Digitized by the Internet Archive in 2007 with funding from IVIicrosoft Corporation http://www.archive.org/details/chroniclehistoryOOflearich WILLIAM SHAKESPEARE PLAYER, POET, AND PLAYMAKBR T^^ OF THE ^ y^ UNIVERSITY ~\t$1l^X/wviwvY^. ^ EDWARD ALLEYN yfj-ih^^^^ A CHRONICLE HISTORY OF THE •LIFE AND WORK OF 5 Ki>. K.es,ota'tc' William Shakespeare PLAYER, POET, AND PLAYMAKER FREDERICK CARD FLEAY Wiiti^ ^too (JEtcTieti SlUusStrationjj. ^ALIFORHi^g LONDON JOHN C NIMMO 14, KING WILLIAM STREET, STRAND, W.C. 1886 [All rights reserved] 95Z fsl5 7h 0^6 DeDtcatton. TO THE SHAKESPEARE OF OUR DAYS, ROBERT BROWNING, A PERMITTED TRIBUTE FROM HIS EVER.DEVOTED LIEGEMAN, FREDERICK CARD FLEAY. To him, whose craft, so subtly terse, (While lesser minds, for music's sake, From single thoughts whole cantos make). Includes a poem in a verse ; — To him, whose penetrative art, With spheric knowledge only his, Dissects by keen analysis The wiliest secrets of the heart ;— To him, who rounds us perfect wholes, Where wisdom, wit, and love combine ; Chief praise be this : — he wrote no line That could cause pain in childlike souls. CONTENTS. H PAGE INTRODUCTION I SECTION I. THE PUBLIC CAREER OF SHAKESPEARE .... 7 SECTION II. THE PERSONAL CONNECTIONS OF SHAKESPEARE WITH OTHER POETS . , 73 SECTION III. ANNALS ON WHICH THE PRECEDING SECTIONS ARE FOUNDED ^i^ 83 •' SECTION IV. THE CHRONOLOGICAL SUCCESSION OF SHAKESPEARE'S PLAYS 1 75 SECTION V. ON THE MARLOWE GROUP OF PLAYS 2$$ SECTION VI. ON THE PLAYS "BY OTHER AUTHORS ACTED BY SHAKE- SPEARE'S COMPANY . 284 INTRODUCTION It is due to the reader of a new work on a sub- ject already so often handled as the Life of Shake- speare to tell him at the outset what he may expect to find therein, and to state the reasons for which I have thought it worth while to devote nearly ten years to its production. Previous investigators have with industrious minuteness already ascertained for us every detail that can reasonably be expected of Shakespeare's private life. With laborious research they have raked together the records of petty debts, of parish assessments, of scandalous traditions, of idle gossip ; and they have shown beyond doubt that Shakespeare was born at Strat- ford-on-Avon, was married, had three children, left his home, made money as an actor and play-maker in London, returned to his native town, invested his savings there, and died. I do not think that when stript of verbiage, and what the slang of the day 2 INTRODUCTION. calls padding, much more than this can be claimed as the result of the voluminous writings on this side of his career. For one I am thankful that things are so ; I have little sympathy with the modern inquisitiveness that peeps over the garden wall to see in what array the great man smokes his pipe, and chronicles the shape and colour of his head-covering. But on the public side of Shake- speare's career little has been adequately ascer- tained ; and with this we are deeply concerned. Not for a mere personal interest, but in its bearings on the history of English literature, we ought to ascertain so far as is possible what companies of actors Shakespeare belonged to, at what theatres they acted, in what plays besides his own he was a performer, what authors this brought him into personal contact with, what influence he exerted on or received from them, what relations, friendly or unfriendly, they had with rival companies, and finally, in what order his own works were produced, and what if any share other hands had in their production. All these matters have been treated carelessly and inaccurately by biographers of the peeping school ; and in the last of these we are gravely referred for the chronology of Shake- speare's plays t9 a schoolboy compilation the author of which is so ignorant as to speak of Lusfs Domi- INTRODUCTION. 3 nion as a play of Jonson^Sj the News from Hell as a />A?y of Dekker's, and Achilles as Laertes* son. This marvel of inefficiency we are told is the best work on the subject ; and this while Malone and Drake are accessible to any student. In the present treatise this hitherto neglected side of Shakespeare's career has been chiefly dwelt on. The facts of his private life are also given ; but not the documents on which they are founded, these having been excellently well collected and arranged in the recent Outlines of the Life of Shakespeare^ by J. O. Halliwell-Phillipps, F.R.S., F.S.A., Hon. M.R.S.L., Hon. M.R.I.A. This book is a treasure-house of documents, and it is greatly to be regretted that they are not published by themselves, apart from hypotheses founded on idle rumour or fallacious mis-reasoning. I do not know any work so full of fanciful theories and " ignes fatui" likely to entice "a deluded traveller out of the beaten path into strange quagmires." ^ There is much else besides documents not given in the present treatise ; discussions as to who might have been Shakespeare's schoolmaster, whether he was apprenticed to a butcher, whether he stole a deer out of a non-existent park, whether he held horses * " These phrases to their owner I resign, For God's sake, reader, take them not for mine." 4 INTRODUCTION. at the theatre door or " was employed in any other equine capacity," whether he went to Denmark or to Venice, and whether Lord Bacon wrote his plays for him. On all these points I must refer to earlier and less sceptical treatises. What the reader will find here is — (i.) A continuous narra- tive in which the statements are mostly taken for granted in accordance with my own view of the evidence accessible to us ; (2.) Annals or chronolo- gical arrangement of the same facts, with discussion of their mutual interrelations ; (3.) Discussion of the evidence on which the chronological succession of Shakespeare's plays is based ; (4.) Similar discus- sions for plays in which he was not main author but only " coadjutor, novice, journeyman, tutor," or even merely one of the possible actors; (5.) A few re- marks on the German versions of his plays acted on the Continent ; and (6.) Tables of quarto editions of his plays, &c., with a list of all plays entered on the Stationers' Registers from the first opening of theatres to their closing in 1640-42. This last item may seem to be somewhat beyond the scope of this book, but it is greatly needed, and it is better that so difficult a task should be performed by one acquainted with dramatic literature than by some scissors-and-paste compiler who cannot distinguish a play from a prose tract. As to the INTRODUCTION. 5 preparation for the whole work it has been to me a labour of love, not, I trust, altogether lost. I have read and re-read for it every play accessible to me that dates earlier than 1640, have compiled annals for every known writer of that period and discus- sions of the dates of his plays, and have compared the results and corrected and re-corrected until a consistent whole has been obtained. Of this whole only the part relating to Shakespeare is here issued. I have to thank the editors of Anglia , Englische Studien , and Shakespeariana for enabling me to print some portions relating to other authors, which will, however, require some minor correc- tions. I have also to thank Dr. Furnivall and Mr. Swinburne for some wholesome criticism upon my earlier work; Dr. Ingleby, Miss Lee, Mr. Boyle, Mr. A. H, BuUen, and especially Dr. H. H. Furness, for kindly sympathy and copies of their own writings, some of which might otherwise have escaped my notice ; and above all Mr. P. A. Daniel, for ever-ready help when asked for, and for judicious strictures on received hypotheses or points debat- "able. The main regret for the earnest student is that so many of these still exist ; as any attempt to give a biography of Shakespeare the form which is aesthetically its due must fail so long as the true order of the facts on which it rests is still esteemed 6 INTRODUCTION. matter of argument. If the reader would wish to judge before proceeding further of the quality of such argument in the present work I would refer him to the discussion on Mucedorus or that on Henry VL in subsequent Sections. One other point requires notice, if not apology. The plan followed in this volume requires much repetition in order that the separate arguments as to the chronological succession of the plays, and as to the order of events in Shakespeare's life, should be presented in intelhgible sequence. This is an evil only to be avoided either by mixing up the two, as is usually done, or by numerous cross-references. Either of these methods leads to greater evils, both by interrupting the logical connection of each series (for unfortunately the evidences are mostly independent of each other), and, which is still more important, by obliterating the mutual support given to the arguments in the twofold hnes of evidence by their leading in each division to compatible results. The inconvenience of these repetitions has therefore been submitted to. LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. SECTION I. THE PUBLIC CAREER OF SHAItESPEARE. On or about Saturday 22d April 1564, William Shakespeare, son of John Shakespeare, glover and dealer in wool, and his wife Mary, n^e Arden, was born in Henley Street, Stratford - on - Avon, and was baptized on the 26th. Nothing whatever is known of his early life, and the few meagre details ascertained as to the condition of his family will be found in a subsequent division of this work. Tra- dition and imagination have supplied untrustworthy materials, with which his biographers have endea- voured to fill up the gap in our information ; but it is not until 28th November 1582 that we find any further reliable fact established concerning him. On that day his marriage bond is dated, he being in his nineteenth year, and his bride, Anne 8 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. Hathaway, in her twenty-sixth. Their first child, Susanna, was baptized 26th May 1583. To account for this young lady's premature arrival a pre-con- tract is assumed, but not proved, by recent writers. On 2d February 1585 their twin children, Hamnet and Judith, were baptized; and in 1587, in the spring, Shakespeare gave his assent to a proposed settlement of a mortgage on his mother's Asbies estate. For ten years after there is no vestige of any communication with his family. It is at this point that his public life begins. In 1587 Leicester's players visited Stratford for the first time. The company, under the same name, that had performed there in 1576 had as well as Warwick's been dissolved in 1583, in order that the Queen's men might be selected from them. In 1586, during the prevalence of the plague in London, this more recent company had been tra- velling on the Continent, and on their return to England made a provincial tour. Shakespeare probably joined them during or immediately after their visit to Stratford, and during their travels re- ceived his earliest instruction in comic acting from Kempe and Pope, who soon after became noted performers ; Bryan also belonged to the company at this date. They probably acted mere interludes, not regular five-act plays. On 4th September 1588 HIS PUBLIC CAREER. 9 the Earl of Leicester died ; and his players soon after found a new patron in Lord Strange. They then settled in London, and acted at the Cross Keys in Bishopsgate Street. The head of the company, in its altered constitution, was ^' Famous Ned Allen," who on 3d January 1588-9 bought up for ;^37, los. Richard Jones' share of 'Splaying apparels, play- books, instruments, &c.," in order to set up his new company. These properties had belonged to Worcester's men under Robert Brown, and were no longer needed b}^ him, as he and his players were about to visit th6 Continent. It was in this way that Shakespeare came to London as a poor strolling player, but nevertheless his position was not without its advantages ; he was associated already with the most noted come- dians of the time, Kempe and Pope ; arid in Alleyn he had the advantage of studying the method of the greatest tragic actor that had yet trod the Eng- lish stage. But he did not remain content with merely acting ; hq now commenced as author. In order to ascertain under what conditions, it will be necessary to briefly state what was the position of the companies and authors in London in 1589. At that date ,there were two theatres in London : the better of the two, the Theater, was occupied by the Queen's men, for whom Greene was the prin- i-! E^TTU ro LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. cipal play-writer. Marlowe, Kyd, and R. Wilson had also contributed plays to their repertoire, but just at this time left them and joined Pembroke's, which, like Leicester's, had been a strolling com- pany, but were now settling in London. On the other hand, Peele and Lodge, who had previously written for the Admiral's company, acting at the other theatre, the Curtain, had also joined, and still remained with, the Queen's. Nearly all these writers, if not quite all, were actors as well as authors. Greene, the Johannes Factotum of the Queen's men, had evidently expected to estabHsh a monopoly of play-acting in their favour, and was indignant at the arrival of vagrant troops of Thespians from the country, just when he had practically succeeded in crippling the rival company in London, by enlisting some of their best authors in the service of his own. Hence on 23d August 1589 his publication of Menaphon, with Nash's address, containing a virulent attack on Kyd and Marlowe, then writing for Pembroke's men, to- gether with a glorification of Peele, then writing in conjunction with Greene. The absence of any allusion in this tract to Shakespeare or Lord Strange's company conclusively proves that they were not as yet dangerous rivals to the Queen's. Pembroke's men were, and there is indirect evi- HIS PUBLIC CAREER. ii dence that they had from their first settlement in London obtained possession of the second theatre, the Curtain. This evidence is connected with the first direct mention which is extant of Shake- speare's company. For in this same year, 1589, the Martinist controversy had been raging in London ; Lyly, Nash, Greene, Monday, and Cooper were the anti-Martinist champions ; the Martinists had been ridiculed on the stage in April, probably by Greene at the Theater, possibly by the Paul's children in some play of Lyly's, or by the Earl of Oxford's boys in one of Monday's. The authorities did not interfere. But in November certain players " within the city," to wit, Lord Strange's and the Admiral's, were silenced for '' abuses or indecent reflexions " (Strype). A comparison of the worthies in Lovers Labour^ s Lost with the anti-Martinist writers, of the Euphuist Armado with Lyly, the boy-satirist Mote with Nash, the curate with the Reverend Robert Greene, the schoolmaster-pedant with the pedagogue Cooper, and Antony Dull with Antony Monday, will I think confirm the theory developed by me in a separate essay, that this was the play sup- pressed on this occasion. It is characteristic of the independence of action shown by Shakespeare's company throughout the reign of Elizabeth that they refused to obey the injunction, and went and 12 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. played at the Cross-Keys that same afternoon, while the subservient Admiral's company dutifully sub- mitted. I do not suppose, however, that the play as then performed was in all parts from the hand of Shakespeare. It is extremely unlikely that he should have commenced his career by independent writing, and there is not a play of his that can be referred even on the rashest conjecture to a date anterior to 1594, which does not bear the plainest internal evidence to its having been refashioned at a later time. In all probability he began to com- pose plays, as we know so many of his contem- poraries did, as an assistant to some experienced dramatist. It may seem idle, in the absence of any positive evidence, to guess who was his original tutor in composition, and yet, as the careers of Peele, Greene, and Marlowe conclusively show that none of them were in 1589 connected with Lord Strange's company, I venture to suggest that it was Robert Wilson. That dramatist is not heard of in connection with Pembroke's or any other company after August 1589, and he cer- tainly continued to write for the stage. That Shakespeare was greatly influenced by him and Peele is evident from the metrical character of Shake^eare's earliest work, which abounds in heroic rhyme like Peele's in tragedy, and in doggerel HIS PUBLIC CAREER. 13 and stanza like Wilson's in comedy. It is not till the Historic plays that the influence of Marlowe's blank verse is fully perceptible, and in the earliest of these, Richard II. y rhyme is still dominant. Wilson was in this view a better teacher for the inexperi- enced Shakespeare than a greater man. Marlowe, for instance, might have biassed him on the tragic side, and deferred or prevented his comedy from its earlier pastoral development. Lovers Labour^ s Won must have been written at about the same time as Lovers Labour^ s Lost, and before the end of 1 590 The Comedy of Errors probably appeared in its original form. In this same year was produced a play in which, although I cannot detect Shake- speare's hand as coadjutor with its probable author, R. Wilson, he most likely appeared as an actor — Fair Em; and that this comedy contained a sati- rical attack on Greene is evident from the offence he took at it, as shown in his virulent address pre- fixed to his Farewell to Folly. Up to this date Greene's chief attacks had been directed against Kyd in Menaphon and in Never too late, but as yet there has been found no allusion to Shakespeare in his writings anterior to 1592. Yet Shakespeare must have been known to him as at least part author of the plays acted by Lord Strange's men in 1589 and 1590. Oi Romeo and Juliet , originally 14 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. acted in 1591, we also possess a version anterior to Shakespeare's final remodelling, which palpably contains scenes not written by him. These scenes, however, seem due to a finer artist than Kyd, and there is independent evidence that George Peele had by 1 591 also become a playwright for Lord Strange's men. One of the plays acted by them in this year was probably Peek's Edward /., here mentioned on account of a curious allusion which would seem to fix the character performed by Shakespeare. In scene 3 Elinor says to Baliol — " Shake [thou] thy spear in honour of hh name Under whose royalty thou wear'st the same." Shakespeare is known to have acted " kingly parts," and this of Edward I. was probably one of them. To this same year may probably be assigned the original production of The Two Gentlemen of Verona. The Court festivities of Christmas 1 591-2 mark an important epoch in the fortunes of Lord Strange's company, and consequently of Shakespeare, now rapidly coming to the front as their chief writer. During the period we have been considering, 1587- 1591, the Queen's and the Admiral's were the only men's companies who performed at Court, but at Christmas 1 591-2 the Admiral's did not act at all, HIS PUBLIC CAREER. 15 and the Queen's, after one performance, gave place to Lord Strange's, and until the death of that nobleman in 1594, his players enjoyed almost a monopoly of Court performances. One presenta- tion by the Earl of Hertford's men, of whom nothing else is recorded, one by the Earl of Sussex', and two by the Earl of Pembroke's, are all that can be balanced with six by Lord Strange's in 1 591-2, and three in 1592-3. This pre-eminence at Court was retained by the company under all its changes of constitution far beyond Shakespeare's time, until the closing of the theatres in 1642. Possibly the influence of Lord Southampton, who had come to town and entered at Gray's Inn in 1590, and was stepson to Sir Thomas Heneage, the treasurer, may have had something to do with this. He does not yet, however, appear to have come into direct communication with Shakespeare. Immediately after this first appearance at Court, Alley n arranged with Henslow, his father-in-law, to give his company a local habitation in a permanent theatre. This was of no small importance to them ; they had hitherto had to play in the inn-yard at the Cross-Keys. Henslow's new theatre was the Rose on the Bankside, which opened in February 1 591 2. The singular fact that every old play (/>., every play that had been previously performed) i6 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. there acted in this season had been with one possible exception derived from the Queen's players, shows that the hitherto most successful company were reduced to sell their copies, and were probably on the verge of bankruptcy. Among these we find Greene's Orlando and Friar Bacon, Greene and Lodge's Looking-glass for London, Marlowe's Jew of Malta, and Kyd's two plays of Jeronymo. The only play traceable to another company is Peek's Battle of Alcazar, called by Henslow Mulomorco. In fact, the Queen's com- pany were now practically without a play-writer. Of their formerly numerous staff Marlowe was writing for Pembroke's men, Kyd and Peele for Lord Strange's, Lodge was abroad, Wilson had left them, and Greene had also quitted them for the Earl of Sussex'. Besides the plays above enume- rated. Lord Strange's players acted a dozen others of which only the titles are known, and produced as new plays the following : — On March 3, Henry VI. (a re-fashioning by Shakespeare of an old Queen's play, into which he introduced the Talbot scenes, celebrated by Nash, which drew such crowded audiences); on April 11, Titus and Vespasian (a version of the Andronicus story extant in a Ger- man translation, and probably written by Kyd ; on April 28, the second part of Tamburlane (not HIS PUBLIC CAREER. 17 extant) ; on June 10, ^4 Merry Knack to Know a Knave (probably by Peele and Wilson) ; and after an interval, during which the theatres were closed on account of the plague, on 5th January 1592-3, The Jealous Comedy (probably The Merry Wives of Windsor) ; and finally, January 30, The Guise (Marlowe's Massacre of Paris). I have brought together this enumeration of the new plays of Strange's men that the reader may better appreciate the often quoted but sadly mis- understood address by Greene to his fellow-dra- matists in his Groatsworth of Wit, not published till September after its author's death, but mani- festly written and probably circulated in manuscript in the early months of 1592. Its aim is directed against a company of players, " burs, puppets, antics, apes, grooms, painted monsters, peasants," among whom is " an upstart crow, a Johannes Factotum, a Shakescene," who supposes he can bom- bast out a blank verse. This is palpably directed against Shakespeare and Lord Strange's players, for whom he was then writing and with whom he was then acting. But Greene also says that they had all been beholding to him and to his fellow writers whom he addresses ; that is, to Marlowe, Peele, ''young Juvenal" (Lodge), and two more (Kyd and Wilson) " that both have writ," whom he might B i8 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE, *' insert against these buckram gentlemen." This can only apply to the Queen's players, for which company alone Greene had written up to 1 591, having supplied them with a play every quarter and purveyed more plays for them than other four (Marlowe, Peele, Kyd, and Lodge), as Nash tells us in his Piers Penniless. There must then have been an amalgamation of the better portions of the two companies, the Queen's and Lord Strange's, just before the opening of the Rose Theatre, a con- clusion confirmed by the fact that the Queen's plays had passed into the hands of the other com- pany, and, as will be seen when I treat of the Henry VI. plays, deduced by me on other and inde- pendent grounds. This attack of Greene's was, I think, answered by Shakespeare in his Midsummer Nighfs Dream, produced in its first form c. June 1592. Bottom and his scratch company have long been recognised as a personal satire, and the follow- ing marks would seem to indicate that Greene and the Sussex' company were the butts at which it was aimed. Bottom is a Johannes Factotum who expects a pension for his playing ; his comrades are unlettered rustics who once obtain an audience at Theseus' court. The Earl of Sussex' men were so inferior a company that they acted at Court but once, viz., in January 1591— 2, and the only new HIS PUBLIC CAREER. 19 play which can be traced to them at this date is George a Greene, in which Greene acted the part of the Pinner himself. This only shows that the circumstances of the fictitious and real events are not discrepant ; but when we find Bottom saying that he will get a ballad written on his adventure, and ^' it shall be called Bottom's Dream, because it hath no bottom" (iv. i. 212) and that peradven- ture he shall " sing it at her (?) death," we surely may infer an allusion to Greene's Maidetis Dream (S. R. 6th December 1591), apparently so called because it hath no maiden in it, and sung at the death of Sir Christopher Hatton. This play of Midsummer NigMs Dream was produced after the closing of the theatres, c. 1 2th June 1592, on account of the plague ; it and the Jealous Comedy, produced 5th January 1592—3, when the theatres reopened for that month only, were almost the last in which Shakespeare worked as a journeyman or with a coadjutor. When he revived these earlier plays for the Chamberlain's men he carefully re- placed in almost every instance the work of his quondam companions by other and certainly not weaker lines of his own. Some of his own work of this date, apparently left unfinished on account of the sudden closure of the playhouses, he appears to have taken up and completed in his 1 60 1— 2 20 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. plays. But no doubt the greater part of this autumn was occupied in writing Venus and Adonis^ dedicated to Lord Southampton (S. R. i8th April 1593) as " the first heir of his invention/' a product of " idle hours : " idle because during the plague no new plays were required of him, nor even re- hearsals ; the players travelled and acted old plays only. In these circuits a whole company did not usually journey together; it was more profitable to separate into parties of half-a-dozen, and of course to cut down their plays so as to be capable of representation by this small body of actors. One part of Lord Strange's men, consisting of AUeyn, Pope, Bryan, Hemings, Phillips, and Kempe, so travelled in 1593 ; but no document has been pre- served respecting the remainder of the company, which included probably Burbadge, Sly, Condell, Holland, Cowley, and Shakespeare. It appears from Alleyn's correspondence that Cowley was the bearer of a letter to him from London to Bristol ; that his section of the company had been at Chelmsford in May, were at Bristol in August, and afterwards visited Shrewsbury, Chester, and York. Meanwhile, on June I, Marlowe had been killed in a brawl, and his version of the Andronicus story was acted by Sussex' men at the Rose, 23d January 1594. From their hands this play passed to Pembroke's HIS PUBLIC CAREER. 21 men c. 8th February, when Sussex' company broke up and went into the country, and from them to the Earl of Derby's before 1 6th April. But this company of Derby's was no other than Lord Strange's. After Henry Earl of Derby died, 25 th September 1593, Ferdinand, his son, who succeeded him, and who had previously borne the title of Lord Strange, was called either Strange or Derby indifferently, he having no son to whom the title of Lord Strange could be, in accordance with custom, assigned in courtesy, although by strict right this title appertained to the Earls of Derby and not to their sons. Along with this Andronicus play the following can be traced as passing from Pembroke's company to Lord Strange's at this date : The Taming of a Shrew, Edward HI., Hamlet, j Henry VI.; and besides this transfer of playbooks there was also a partial transfer of the company itself. Beeston, Cooke, Sinkler, Holland, and others were among these new members. The cause of this arrange- ment was no doubt poverty ; already on 28th Sep- tember 1593 they could not ^' save their charges to travel, and were fain to pawn their apparel." So writes Henslowe to Alleyn. I must now recur to 1593. Immediately after Christmas the theatres reopened ; but at the Rose the Earl of Sussex' men acted instead of Lord 22 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. Strange's, who played about the city, at the Cross- Keys for example. When Sussex' men broke up, on the 8th April, the Rose remained empty except for three days, 14— 1 6th May, when the Admiral's com- pany acted there, no doubt under Alleyn, who was servant to the Admiral as well as to Lord Strange. The Admiral, however, had himself laid a restraint on the Rose theatre (probably c. 8th April), and ordered that Lord Strange's players should play " three days " {i.e., three days a week) at Newing- ton Butts. This was petitioned against by the watermen, whose calling was greatly in request when the Rose was open, and by Lord Strange's players themselves. No redress appears to have been granted during the life of Lord Strange, who died on 1 6th April, but when the company had found a new patron in Lord Hunsdon the Chamber- lain, and had submitted to the order by playing on alternate days with the Admiral's at Newington Butts, then the restraint on the Rose was removed. The Chamberlain's players, however, did not act there, but under Shakespeare and Burbadge re- opened the old Theater, while Alleyn left them and acted with the Admiral's at the Rose. Before passing to notice the poems written by Shakespeare during this period of '' travelling," I may note that these plays acquired from Pembroke's HIS PUBLIC CAREER. 23 men appear to have been written by Marlowe or Kyd. Edward III., by Marlowe, was, with altera- tions by Shakespeare, acted about the city in 1594. Titus Andronicus and j Henry VI. were also acted by the Chamberlain's company ; but they show no evidence of extensive alterations at Shakespeare's hand ; he probably merely corrected them. Another play of this date, Richard II Lj bears strong internal evidence of Marlowe's craftmanship, but was no doubt completed and partly rewritten by Shake- speare. The Kyd plays, on the other hand, were not utilised in this way. New plays on the same plots as the old Hamlet and The Taming of a Shrew were afterwards produced by the Chamberlain's men — Hamlet by Shakespeare, The Taming of the Shrew by Lodge (most likely), but greatly altered by Shakespeare some years after. Another play performed by Derby's men contemporaneously with these was The Seven Deadly Sins. This play had not been derived from Pembroke's men, but from the Queen's, for whom Tarleton had originally plotted it. The plot as acted in 1594 still exists, and is especially valuable as showing the compo- sition of Lord Strange's company at that date. Shakespeare, however, took no part in it. The large number of performers singularly agrees with the statement in the players' petition above alluded to tTNIVEHSITY 24 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. that " our company is great." There was also a play Locrine, pubHshed S. R. 20th July 1594, as re- vised by W. S., which has been interpreted William Shakespeare. I do not think he could in any way have been concerned in this revival of Peele and Tilney's stilted performance, and suspect that W. S. means William Sly ; nor do I think that any other play of Shakespeare's, save those already mentioned, can be assigned to a date anterior to the formation of the Chamberlain's company except Troylus and Cressida in its original form, which was probably acted c. 1593. In fact, Shakespeare was from the breaking out of the plague in 1592 until the settle- ment of his reconstituted company in 1594 chiefly occupied, not with plays, but with poems. His Venus and Adonis has already been noticed, and on 9th May 1594 his Rape of Lucrece was published. In the Dedication to Lord Southampton, Shake- speare speaks of " the warrant I have of your honourable disposition : " in what especial way Southampton had shown his favour to Shakespeare has been the subject of many conjectures. My own opinion is that he had introduced him as repre- sentative of his fellow -actors to Lord Hunsdon, and procured them their new patron ; but in a scandalous book called Willobie his Avisa, published 3d Septem- ber 1594, the version of the connection between the HIS PUBLIC CAREER. 25 nobleman and the " old player " is that W. S. had parted with a mistress to H. W. and been rewarded accordingly ; and it would be useless to deny that the Sonnets written between 1594 and 1598 dis- tinctly allude to some circumstance of this kind. The Avisa book was, however, suppressed or '^ called in " on 4th June 1599, as a libellous production. This year may be regarded as the turning-point in Shakespeare's public career. Until the estab- Hshment of the Chamberlain's company, he had been an actor gradually rising in the esteem of his fellows, but often obliged to travel and to act about town in inn-yards, and his play-writing had been confined to vamping old plays by other men, or at best to assisting such writers as Wilson or Peele in producing new ones. He had served, as it were, a seven years' apprenticeship. But henceforward he takes his place as one of the chief actors in the principal company in London, acting in a licensed theatre ; he is also, with occasional assistance, the sole purveyor of plays to this company, and he is the acknowledged writer of the most popular love poems of his time. For it is to the author of Lucrece and Adonis that his contemporaries assign their praises far more than to the writer of Lear or Hamlet. Poems were in their opinion fit work for a prince ; but plays were only congruous with 26 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. strolling vagabondism. It is just at this turning- point that the first nominal mention of Shakespeare is found as acting before the Court at Greenwich on December 26 and 28, along with Kempe and Burbadge. The performance on 26th December was on the same day that Shakespeare and his company had acted The Comedy of Errors at Gray's Inn — the earliest of his plays in their present form, but founded on a previous version, in which another pen was concerned. On 26th January 1594-5, Midsummer Nighfs Dream was, I conjecture, acted at Greenwich at the marriage of W. Stanley, Earl of Derby, and after- wards on the public stage ; it was evidently written for a marriage, but, like the preceding play, had been altered for this special occasion. Its original production was probably in 1592, at the marriage of Robert Carey, afterwards Earl of Monmouth. In both instances the bridegrooms were close con- nections of the patrons of the actors ; W. Stanley being brother to Ferdinand, Lord Strange, and Robert Carey son to Henry, Lord Hunsdon, the Chamberlain. Another 1595 play was /?/'cA«rflf //., evidently an imitation of Marlowe's Edward II. Marlowe was Shakespeare's first model in His- torical Plays, as Kyd was in Tragedy and Lyly in HIS PUBLIC CAREER. 27 Comedy, but he followed Marlowe much more closely than either of the other two. If any other author contributed plays to the Chamberlain's com- pany this year it must have been Lodge, to whom Mucedorus and A Larum for London may probably be attributed. At Christmas they acted five plays at Court. In 1596, there is little doubt that Shakespeare produced his King John y founded on two old plays on the same subject which were written for the Queen's men in 1589 by Peele, Marlowe, and Lodge. Their plot has been very closely followed by Shakespeare and a few lines borrowed. At some time between 23d July 1596 and 5th March 1597 he also revived Romeo and Juliet ^ at the Theater ; this new version was founded on the old play of 1 591, in which Shakespeare was only part writer. Of plays by other authors only one can be traced to his company in this year, namely, Sir Thomas More ( ? by Drayton and Lodge). This play was severely handled by the Master of the Revels for its allusions to contem- porary events, and the alterations made by him afford instructive study to dramatic critics. On August 5, immediately after the appearance of Romeo and Juliet ^ a ballad on the story was entered S. R., and on August 27, T. Millington was fined 28 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. for printing ballads on The Taming of a Shrew and Macbeth. This indicates the existence of a Mac- beth play at this time, but probably, like the older Hamlet and Lear^ one in whose production Shake- speare had no share. Kempe mentions the Macbeth ballad as the first production of its author in his Nine Days^ Wonder. In February this same year James Burbadge bought the property in Black- friars, on which he began in November to build the Blackfriars Theatre, wherein in 1597, after some opposition, he succeeded in establishing the Chapel children under Evans. The Chamberlain's company did not act at this theatre in Shake- speare's time. There were six Court performances at Christmas 1596-7. It is necessary now to recur to Shakespeare's private life. On 5th August 1596 his son Hamnet died, and he unquestionably visited Stratford and renewed relations with his family at this time. John Shakespeare having applied to the Heralds* College for a grant of arms, obtained this conces- sion in October, and in the Easter term 1597 William Shakespeare purchased the property called New Place in Stratford. In November 1597 the Asbies business was revived in a Chancery suit brought by Shakespeare's parents against John Lambert, son of Edmond. In the bill of complaint HIS PUBLIC CAREER. 29 the Shakespeares describe themselves as " of small wealth, and very few friends ; " but it is clear that their wealth must have had a recent accession, or they would not now have renewed a dispute which, on their own statement, had lain in abeyance since 1580. All these proceedings alike, the acquisition of a residence in Stratford, the obtaining a grant of arms, the endeavour to establish old claims to family property, point to Shakespeare's desire, now that he had succeeded in London and made money, to settle in Stratford as a country gentleman, and found a family. He may have hoped for the birth of another son, his wife being in 1596 still under forty years of age. But the inferences usually drawn from the incidents of this time, that Shake- speare had constantly held communication with his family, whom he had supported during his theat- rical career in London, and that he was, on this occasion, largely indebted to the bounty of Lord Southampton, are mere fancies. The natural in- terpretation of such records as have reached us is that it was not till touched by the hand of the great reconciler Death, in the person of the ex- pected heir to his new-founded fortunes, that he ever visited his family at all during the nine years since he left them to carve his own way as a strolling player. If conjecture is to be allowed at all, I 30 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. would rather suggest that his family were offended at his choice of an occupation, and that it was not till he had made a marked success that they were reconciled to him. Returning to Shakespeare's public career — on 5th March 1597 George Carey, Lord Hunsdon, was created Chamberlain, and his players resumed the title of " The Lord Chamberlain's." Early in this year was almost certainly produced The Merchant of Venice^ founded on an old play of Dekker's called Joseph the Jew of Venice, written c. 1592, and acted in 1594 by the Admiral's men, but not now extant^ In the same year was performed / Henry IV. The comic powers of Shakespeare appear in these plays in their highest development in Shylock and Fal- staff, and endeavours have been made by several (myself included) to mark this as the beginning of a new period in his manner of work. In such attempts, however, it is necessary to assign specific single dates to each play, and consequently to neglect the proved fact of frequent alterations of considerable extent having been made at revivals. I think it better to regard as Shakespeare's first period the time anterior to the formation of the Chamberlain's company, 1587-93, during which he was employed only as ^'journeyman or coadjutor," and not to separate the series of Comedies and HIS PUBLIC CAREER. 31 Histories which were produced in their perfected forms from 1594 to 1602. It may, however, be noted that at this time, 1597, he had entirely dis- carded the doggerel couplets and the excessive use of rhyme that mark his early work, and that this fact is useful in analysing plays which, though produced later in the form in which they have reached us, were founded on eadier versions in which he was probably only a part writer. An- other play acted by Shakespeare's company this year was Drayton's Merry Devil of Edmonton, In this, as well as in Henry IV., Sir John Oldcastle was originally one of the characters. This name was adopted from the old Queen's play of The Famous Victories of Henry V., from which the main plot of Shakespeare's - Henry V. series was taken, and certainly was not intended to give offence to the Cobhams, his descendants. They took offence, how- ever, and the name was altered to that of Sir John Falstaff, taken from another Queen's play, / Henry VI., which I have already noticed, and which, with the addition of the scene of the Temple Garden, was acted by the Chamberlain's company. Between August and October, the Theater having become ruinous, and litigation between James Bur- badge, its lessee, and Giles Alleyn, the ground land- lord, being imminent, the Chamberlain's company 32 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. removed to the Curtain. The Earl of Pembroke's company, who have for controversial purposes been unjustifiably confused with the Chamberlain's, in August acted as strollers at Rye, in Sep- tember at Dover, and on their return to London amalgamated with the Admiral's, and acted at the Rose. Among the plays acted by Shakespeare's company at the Curtain was Romeo and Juliet^ as appears from a singular allusion in Marston's SatireSy which also serves to show that this play then, as now, was one of the most popular of his productions. But his popularity is shown in another way this year. Coincidently with the removal to the Curtain, we find the first appearance of authorised publication of his plays, Richard II. having been entered S. R. on 29th August, and Richard III, on 20th October. The Romeo and Juliet printed this year was neither entered nor authorised. On 26th December Lovers Labour^s Lost was acted at Court, being one of four plays provided for the Christmas festivities by this company. It was probably specially commanded, and the alterations from the 1589 version, which were very hurriedly done, were almost certainly made on this occasion. On 25 th February 1598, the first part of Henry IV. was printed, and the second part was acted HIS PUBLIC CAREER. 33 soon after. The popularity of these plays caused a re-issue in this year of the old Queen's play of The Famous Victories of Henry V., brought out in order that the purchaser might imagine he was procuring a copy of Shakespeare's plays. The genuine Henry IV,, for this and reasons alluded to above connected with the elimination of Oldcastle's name, was published earlier after its production on the stage than usual. For the same reason this alteration was expressly alluded to in the Epilogue to 2 Henry IV., *' Oldcastle is not the man." In this same year Much Ado about Nothing (probably a recast of Love's Labouf^s Won) was performed. On 7th September was entered S. R., Meres' Wifs Treasury, which contains, among many encomiums of Shakespeare, a list of twelve of his plays. This tract was demonstrably not written till June, and the plays are manifestly those that had been produced by Shakespeare during the existence of the Cham- berlain's company. These are : Gentlemen of Verona (1595), Errors (1594), Lovers Labour's Lost (1597), Lovers Labours Won (1598), Midsummer Nighfs Dream (1595), and Merchant of Venice (1597); Richard I L (1595), Richard III. (1594); Henry IV. (1597), King John (1596), Titus Andronicus (1594), and Romeo and Juliet (1596). Plays produced before or in 1594 that had not been recast after that 34 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. year are not mentioned ; for instance, / Henry VI. (1592), Troylus and Cresstda (1593), The Merry Wives of Windsor (1592), and Edward III. (1594). This list is of the highest value, when rightly understood, in determining the order of production of the plays. Another event, important to the welfare of the Chamberlain's company, was the introduction of Ben Jonson as a play-writer for their stage. This took place in September, and there is no reason for doubting the tradition that he was introduced to them by Shakespeare, who acted in Every Man in his Humour^ as it was published in the Quarto, before the end of the year. The fact that the Chamberlain's men acted three plays at Court during the Christmas festivities, closes the theatrical record for 1598, but one or two other details remain to be noticed. The establishment of peace on May 2 by the treaty of Vervins, com- pared with Sonnet 107, "olives of endless age," fixes the conclusion of these effusions as about this time, and Southampton's marriage at the end of the year precluded the need of their continuance. They probably were finished before Meres' mention of them in Wifs Treasury (written c. July) as Shakespeare's " sugared sonnets among his private friends." Little details of evidence are also extant, showing that since his purchase of New Place, HIS PUBLIC CAREER. *" 35 Shakespeare's residence was partly in the country. On 4th February he appears as third largest owner of corn in his ward at Stratford, and in October we find him procuring a loan of ;^30 in London, for his friend and countryman Richard Quiney. His London residence at this time was in St. Helen's, Bishopsgate ; but still earlier than this, on 24th January, he was in negotiation about the purchase of some thirty acres of land at Shottery, and Abra- ham Sturley wrote from Stratford to his brother- in-law, the same Richard Quiney, urging him to suggest to Shakespeare the purchase of the corpora- tion tithe-lease; it "would advance him indeed, and would do us much good," says Sturley. In January 1598-9 James Burbadge brought his dispute with Giles Alleyn about the Theater to a practical conclusion by removing the materials of that, structure from Shoreditch to the Bankside, and erecting the Globe with them. This '' round " was opened in the spring, and in it all the plays of Shakespeare not hitherto noticed were originally produced. Before quitting the Curtain, however, A Warning for Fair Women was there acted by the Chamberlain's men. This was in my opinion Lodge's last play. Another play of the same date was Shakespeare's Henry F., reproduced, with addi- tions and alterations, at the Globe in the autumn 36 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. of the same year. Other Globe plays of this year were As You Like It^ and Jonson's Every Man out of his Humour. This latter was the first of his comical satires, in which he introduces on the stage Marston, Dekker, Monday, the Globe players, &c. Only this one was acted by Shakespeare's company, and it is specially remarkable that Shakespeare did not take a part in it, although he had acted in Every Man in his Humour in 1598. It is pretty clear that he disliked Jonson's personahties, and it is certain that Jonson had to remove them from the Globe Theatre to the Blackfriars, where the Children of the Revels acted under Evans The Case is Altered (1599), Cynthia^ s Revels (1600), and The Poetaster (1601). Chapman supported Johnson with Sir Giles Goosecap (1601). The Paul's Children retaliated with Marston's Jack Drunks Entertain- ment (1600), and Antonio and Mellida (1600) ; the Admiral's at the Rose with Marston's Histriomastixy and Patient Grissel by Dekker, Haughton, and Chettle (December 1599); and the Chamberlain's with Dekker's Satiromastix (1601). All these plays, and the list is not exhaustive, are filled with personal allusions. The quarrel was known as the "War of the theatres." The prevalent dislike to regard Shakespeare as less than angelic has pre- vented due attention being given to the direct state- HIS PUBLIC CAREER. 37 ment in The Return from Parnassus (acted 1602-3) that he had put down all the playwrights of the University press and administered a purge to Jonson in return for the emetic which he administers to Marston in The Poetaster. Shakespeare certainly did take part in this controversy, and it is in the plays dating 1599— 1602 that we must look for his contributions to it. One thing, however, is certain, that he did not act as a violent partisan. If he purged Jonson he did not spare Dekker, who had written for his own company in this quarrel ; " when rank Thersites opes his Mastick jaws " (Troylus, i. 3) identifies him clearly enough. In fact, when the Globe company wanted a thorough party advocate in this matter it was not to Shake- speare that they applied. They took the very unusual course of hiring a poet from a rival com- pany, and hence Dekker's Satiromastix was written for them. I venture to add that this would not have been allowed by Shakespeare had he been in London at the time, and that it had to be trans- ferred to the sole use of the Paul's children, probably at his instance. Recurring to Every Man out of his Humour, the beginning of all this strife, a comparison of the actor list with that of Jonson's preceding play shows that Kempe, Beeston, and others had left the Chamberlain's company on the 38 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. opening of the Globe. They no doubt remained at the Curtain, where a company called Lord Derby's soon began to act. This secession did not injure the Globe men, who became very popular. In October, for instance, we hear of Lord South- ampton going to plays every day, of course at his old player protege's house. But that some serious quarrel had taken place is, I think, evident from the exclusion of so important a name as Beeston's from the list of chief actors in the first Folio edition of Shakespeare. Duke, Pallant, &c., who seceded at the same time with Beeston, are equally excluded, so that the omission is not accidental. In this year a perfect edition of Romeo and Juliet was published, probably on leaving the Curtain ; and The Passionate Pilgrim was impudently issued by W. Jaggard as by William Shakespeare. Be- yond two sonnets and a few lines from Love's Labour's Lost, published in 1598, there is nothing in this book that can be shown to be Shakespeare's, but much that cannot. Somewhere about this date an unsuccessful application was made to impale the arms of Shakespeare with those of Arden. The Chamberlain's men performed three plays at Court during the Christmas festivities, viz. : on 26th December, probably As You Like It; 5 th January, probably Henry V.; and another play on 4th Feb- HIS PUBLIC CAREER. 39 ruary. I think this was the occasion for which The Merry Wives of Windsor was written, or rather rewritten on the foundation of The Jealous Comedy of 1592. The Queen, whose admiration for the character of Falstaff is well known, was sorely dis- appointed that Shakespeare had not fulfilled his promise made in the Epilogue to 2 Henry IV,, that he would again introduce him on the stage; and there is no reason to doubt the tradition that, wish- ing to see him under new conditions, she ordered Shakespeare to represent him in love, which order he obeyed by writing The Merry Wives within a fortnight. The dates all suit this hypothesis, and in any case there can be no doubt that this comedy stands apart from the Henry V. histories, and was last in point of time. Another play of this year was Julius CcBsar. There is no evidence of any other writer than Shakespeare for the company this year, in which the 2 and j Henry VI. (alluded to as recast in Jonson's Prologue to his revised version of Every Man in his Humour, acted by the Chapel children early in 1 601) were revised and partly rewritten by him. As usual in such cases, the old abridged acting copies of the plays in their earlier shape were reprinted. But there is more interesting matter connected with the publishers in the 1 600 entries. On August 4, As You Like It, 40 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. Henry V., Much Ado about Nothing, and Every Man in his Humour, all Chamberlain's plays, were ordered to be " stayed ; " they were probably suspected of being libellous, and reserved for further exami- nation. Since the ^' war of the theatres " was at its height, they may have been restrained as not having obtained the consent of the Chamberlain, on behalf of his company, to their publication. Subsequently, Every Man in his Humour was licensed on 14th August, but not printed till 1601. Much Ado was also licensed 23d August, and printed ; As You Like It was not allowed to appear, the company probably objecting that it had only- been on the stage for one year, but Henry V. was printed surreptitiously by T. Millington and T. Busby before 14th August, on which date it appears in S. R. as the property of T. Pavier, who reprinted it in 1602. The pecuharity of this Quarto issue is, that it contains no matter which does not also appear in the complete Folio version, whereas, in the somewhat similar cases of Romeo and Juliet, The Merry Wives, and Hamlet, there is in every instance some portion of the Quarto which is palpably by another hand. This agrees with my view that these three plays, as in the Folio, were founded on earlier plays, in which Shake- speare was at most a coadjutor, while the Folio HIS PUBLIC CAREER. 41 Henry V. is a revision of his own play, produced not long before. Another entry in S. R. is interest- ing. On October 28, The Merchant of Venice was entered to T. Hayes, with Pavier's consent; Roberts had already entered it 22d July 1598, but it had not been allowed to appear, probably because, like those mentioned above, it had then been only one year on the stage. On October 8, Midsummer NigMs Dream was also entered. Of the editions of these two plays published in this year informa- tion will be found in another part of this book. On nth August the two plays on Sir John Oldcastle^ of which only one has reached us, were entered. They had been acted in 1599 at the Rose by the Admiral's men, and were directed against the pre- sumed scandal thrown on the ^' martyr " in Shake- speare's Henry V. series. It should be especially noted that the principal author of these plays was Drayton, formerly fellow-worker with Shakespeare for the Chamberlain's men, and introducer of Sir John Oldcastle as a profligate parson in The Merry Devil of Edmonton. Of Shakespeare's personal movements during this year we merely know that he was in London in April recovering a debt of £y of one Clayton, and no doubt acting in the three plays performed at Court in the winter. In March 1 601 the Chamberlain's company were 42 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. in disgrace for having publicly acted " the outdated play of Richard 11.,* no doubt inclusive of the de- position scene (which had been omitted in the pub- lished copies, under the censorship of the Master of the Revels), for the entertainment of the Essex conspirators. They consequently " travelled," hav- ing previously produced Shakespeare's AWs Well that Ends Well, a considerable portion of which is of much earlier date (c. 1592), but which, in the Parolles scenes, has distinct allusion to Marston's Jack DruffUs Entertainment of the preceding year, and to the " war of the theatres," not yet concluded. They also acted the play of Cromwell, Earl of Essex, by W. S., in which the parallel between the careers of Cromwell and the lately executed Earl is strongly brought out. I believe W. S. to have been WiUiam Sly, the well-known actor of the Chamberlain's company. In their travels this year the company visited the Universities of Oxford and Cambridge, where they performed y^/Zz'^/s Ccesar and Hamlet. The version of this last play so acted was not the old play by Kyd, but one hurriedly remodelled by Shakespeare, which we possess in an imperfect form in the first Quarto. Among the Shakespearian additions occur passages alluding to the theatrical war and the popularity of the Chapel Children, to which the travelling of the company HIS PUBLIC CAREER. 43 is attributed. This proves that Shakespeare was one of the strolHng detachment. Jonson seized on this defence in his Poetaster^ and represented that the travelHng was due to the inefficiency of their play-writers, and makes Tucca tell Histrio, the Globe player, that if they will employ Marston, who " pens high lofty in a new stalking strain," they *' shall not need to travel with thy pumps full of gravel after a blind jade and a hamper, and stalk upon boards and barrel-heads to an old cracked trumpet." The travels, however, were not confined to England. In October they had reached Aber- deen, where they received the title of '^ the King's Servants," and Laurence Fletcher, their manager, was admitted burgess of guild of the borough. In all probability a version of the old Macbeth play was produced before King James — such a version as that of Hamlet acted at the Universities. Its plot would fit more aptly with the circumstances of the Gowry conspiracy of i6cx) than that of Richard 11. would with Essex, and anything more pleasing to the King and people of Scotland could not have been selected. During the absence of this strolling detachment Jonson's Poetaster was pro- duced, containing a vigorous attack on the Globe company ; and they, in Shakespeare's absence, hired Dekker to reply in his Satiromastix^ which, with 44 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. the aid of the Paul's children, they represented in the public theatre of the Globe, and in the private convocation-room of Paul's. During this same ab- sence, on 8th September Shakespeare's father was buried at Stratford. He apparently died intestate. After the return from Scotland, the appearance of Shakespeare's name, as fellow-contributor to Chester's Lovers Martyr with Jonson, Marston, and Chapman, marks the conclusion of the theatrical quarrel, and the reconciliation of all the principal combatants, except Dekker. But although this book bears the date i6oi, it could not, I think, have been issued earlier than March i6oi— 2, after the production of Twelfth Night on February 2 at the Middle Temple. Such presentations as this at Inns of Court were usually of new plays ; and there is in this play fairly conclusive internal evi- dence that the theatrical quarrel was not over when it was acted. With regard to Shakespeare's other play of this year, Troylus and Cressida, it was as clearly produced after the reconciliation. ' The entry in S. R., " as it is acted by the Lord Chamber- Iain's men," is absolutely conclusive that it was still on the stage on 1st February i602— 3, and was therefore produced, in all probability, in the later half of 1602. In this play the Prologue, the love story of Troylus, and all the scenes after v. 4, are HIS PUBLIC CAREER. 45 taken from the old play of c. 1593, in which Shake- speare only wrote as a coadjutor. The Prologue and the later scenes — v. 5-10 — are manifestly by the second pen in the main, and printed by mis- take, the end of the revised version being shown by the repetition of the lines '' Wh}^, but hear you," &c., at the end of v. 3. That the 1602 version of the play was intended to refer to the theatrical quarrel of 1599— 1602 is clear from the line ''Rank Thersites with his mastick tooth," who is evidently Dekker, of whom Jonson says in the Poetaster (iii. i), " He has one of the most overflowing rank wits in Rome ; he will slander any man that breathes if he disgust him." Dekker had pro- duced the S^^/VoMASTix shortly before Troylus was acted ; and it has been noted that he was not one of the contributors to Chester's Martyr. I believg^ the Troylus play to have been the one in which g^hakespeare put down all the University men, and purged Ben Jonson's pride, as we learn that he jdid from the University play of The Return from Parnassus f acted in January 1602-3 ; the char- acter of Ajax, "Slow as the elephant, into whom nature hath so crowded humours" &c. (i. 2), hltspff j|onson^ex:?tCtly, and is a good-humoured reply to Jonson's self-estimate as Crites in Cynthids Revels (ii. i), " A creature of a most divine temper, one 46 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. in whom the elements and humours are peaceably met/' &c. In May 1602 Gilbert Shakespeare (his brother being probably in London) concluded the purchase on his behalf of 107 acres of land in Old Stratford, bought of the Coombes for £^^0, and on 28th September Walter Getley transferred to him (not in person), at a Court Baron of the Manor of Rowington, a cottage and garden in Chapel Lane. The lady of the manor retained possession until personal completion of the purchase. The Cham- berlain's company were re-admitted to act at Court in the winter, not having performed there in 1 601-2, probably on account of the Richard II. affair. They acted, however, only two plays. In the following March, 1603, Shakespeare remodelled The Taming of the Shrew by the rewriting of the Katherine and Petruchio scene. The play before he altered it was one written, I think, by Lodge about 1596, and founded on the old Kyd play of 1589 acted by Pembroke's men. On March 29 Queen Elizabeth died, and whether it be due to the different requirements of the new Court, or to a natural development of Shakespeare's mind, there can be no doubt that a marked change of style and method took place at this epoch in his work. It should not be forgotten that the primary object for HIS PUBLIC CAREER. 47 which theatres were established was that stage- players " might be the better enabled and prepared to show such plays to her [or his] Majesty as they shall be required," and that the '' honest recrea- tion " of the citizens was a secondary matter. For proof of this see the Privy Council documents quoted by Collier in his Annals, passim, and specially in i. 309. Hence the succession of a new sovereign had greater influence on the tone of the drama than we can well realise. In Shake- speare's case it inaugurated a period in which Tragedy was predominant in place of Comedy and History. All his greatest tragedies were produced during the next four years 1603-6. Before quitting the reign of Elizabeth, I call atten- tion to the significant fact that the Chamberlain's company performed at Court before- the accession of James exactly twenty-eight plays, and that the number of Shakespeare's plays known to have been produced during the same period by that company is twenty, and of other men's eight. I do not press this exact agreement as showing absolute identity between the two lists ; one or two of the Court plays may have been merely revivals, one or two of the stage plays may not have been brought before her Majesty at all, but I think the following inferences justifiable. The Queen, evidently as a 48 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. general rule, only allowed new plays, or plays so largely reconstructed as to be reckoned as new, to be presented to her. So far as the Chamberlain's company were concerned, these plays consisted on an average of two of Shakespeare's and one of another author's — these numbers, however, being rather exceeded in the earlier years, and diminished in the later. Shakespeare consequently was to this company in the same position as Greene to the Queen's men before his time, purveying to their use " more than four other," which explains his rapid advance in popularity and accumulation of property. And finally, the number of plays supposed to have been lost has been grossly exaggerated by modern critics, who have based their calculations on the Diary of Henslowe, whose policy was quan- tity rather than quality, and who was continually deceived by his hack-writers presenting to his illite- rate ignorance old plays new vamped as if they were completely new. In 1603 the plague raged in London. In March before the Queen's death, the theatres were closed, and in the license of May 19, which adopted the Chamberlain's men as the King's Servants (a title already conferred on them in Scotland in 1601), a special clause was inserted allowing them to act ** when the infection of the plague shall decrease." HIS PUBLIC CAREER. 49 The infection did not decrease, yet the theatres were reopened, but probably only for a few days. Doubtless the authorities closed them on account of the continuance of the sickness. The plays acted at this reopening were probably The Miseries of Enforced Marriage, by George Wilkins, a new author, which was founded on contemporaneous events in Yorkshire, and certainly the perfected Hamlet as we now have it in the Folio. The older version, which had been entered S. R. on 26th July 1602, was now published, having probably been *' stayed," as was frequently the case with plays printed by J. Roberts (for example The Merchant of Venice, Troylus and Cressidd), but not till the copyright had been transferred to N. Ling and J. Trundell. In 1604 Ling issued the second Quarto, which in some instances suppHes passages omitted in the Folio for stage purposes, and in others presents alternative versions and additions evi- dently made for the Court performance (one of nine) in the winter 1603-4. It was a common practice to utilise the altered copies of plays acted at Court by allowing their publication. Yet another play acted by the King's men this year was Jonson's Sejanus, for which he was accused of Popery and treason by Northampton. When he published it (2d November 1 604, S. R.), he stated 50 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. that *' this book in all numbers is not the same with that which was acted on the public stage; wherein a second pen had good share : in place of which I have rather chosen to put weaker, and no doubt less pleasing of mine own, than to defraud so happy a genius of his right by my loathed usurpation." The only known writers for the King's men at this date were Wilkins, W. S. (? Sly), Shakespeare, and possibly Tourneur. Of these there can be no doubt that Shakespeare is the only one that could have been the second pen alluded to. Not that necessarily he was a coadjutor to Jonson in this play. It is more likely that as he acted one of the principal parts in it he inserted or altered scenes in which he himself appeared. It is clear that '^ the second pen," who- ever he was, objected to his share in the play being pubhshed, and no wonder, seeing how its main author had been accused on account of it. This probably explains why the book was kept in the press six months, from November 1604 to April 1605. When it was issued Jonson's Volpone was just coming on the stage, and it is noticeable that Shakespeare did not act in that play, and that immediately after Jonson quitted the King's men and joined Chapman and Marston in writing East- ward Ho for the Revels children, in which Hamlet HIS PUBLIC CAREER. 51 is ridiculed. All this seems to point to a quarrel between Jonson and Shakespeare, and certainly Jonson's behaviour in the Sejanus matter is not, as Gifford calls it, manly. To drag in unnecessarily an allusion to a friend whose personality must have been known to the public of that time, into an address prefixed to a work accused of Popery and sedition was unmanly ; and, as his friend had ob- jected to it, was discreditable. No intercourse can be shown between Shakespeare and Jonson after 1603. On 30th January 1 603— 4, the new company of the Revels children replaced the Chapel boys at Blackfriars. They were, however, in the main composed of the same actors, and were not unfre- quently mentioned under their old name. On March 15, we find that among the King's train, at his entry into London, were nine of the King's company, dressed in the scarlet cloth allowed for the occasion. As these nine are identical with those in the license of 19th May 1603, which is statedly incomplete, they must have been in some way distinguished from the rest of their fellows. They were, no doubt, shareholders in the Globe. Cooke and Lowin, who acted in Sejanus and VolponCy do not appear among them ; nor do Tooley, Gough, and Sinkler, who were at this 52 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. time members of the company. The nine were Shakespeare, PhilHps, Fletcher, Hemings, Burbadge, Sly, Lowin, Condell, and Cowley. In July, Shake- speare was in Stratford, recovering in the local court some £2 odd for malt, &c., sold to one Rogers. In August he was summoned to London, the King's men having to attend at Somerset House to play at the reception of the Spanish ambassador. During this year he produced Othello and Measure for Measure^ which were acted at Court in the winter festivities, along with five old plays of his, and two of Jonson's. Hamlet does not occur in this list, as it undoubtedly would have done if produced in 1604. It was, in fact, pub- lished this year as it had been acted at Court in the previous winter. Another play acted by the King's men was Marston's Malcontent, with an Induction by Webster, in which the reason of its appearance is explained. The Blackfriars children had acted Jeronymo in 1600, an old play of Kyd's, which had passed to the King's men from Lord Strange's, by whom it had been purchased of the Queen's. It had probably been taken from the Chamberlain's men to the Chapel children by Jonson, who in 1 60 1, September 25, transferred it to the Admiral's, and wrote additions to it for Henslowe. This appropriation of their property HIS PUBLIC CAREER. 53 irritated the Globe players, and when they got the chance, at the reconstitution of the Blackfriars children in 1604, they procured The Malcontenty which had been acted by these pigmies, and pro- duced it on their own stage as " one for another." They also in December acted ''the tragedy of Gowry with all action and actors," so Chamberlain writes to Winwood, December 18, " with exceeding concourse of all sorts of people," but he adds, " some great councillors are much displeased with it, and so 'tis thought it shall be forbidden." It probably was forbidden, as the play has disappeared. Another mysterious play is The Spanish Mas, said to have been one of the eleven performed in the winter at Court. Nothing is known of such a play ; but much is known of forgery connected with such statements. In 1605, the tragedy of Kmg Lear was acted about 7th May, when the old Leir, on which it was founded, but which was a comedy^ was entered S. R. as a " Tragical History " of Leir, &c,, " as it was lately acted." Another play of very dubious authorship was acted by the King's men before 3d July, when the ballad on the same events was entered S. R. ; this was The Yorkshire Tragedy. It was a continuation of the story of The Miseries of Enforced Marriage, but treated more realistically 54 I^IFE OF SHAKESPEARE. and more powerfully. It was published 2d May 1608 as by Shakespeare, as in 1605 The London Prodigal had already been, but in the latter instance the publication was unlicensed and surreptitious, while the Yorkshire Tragedy was entered S. R. as *^ written by William Shakespeare." The entry, however, was made for T. Pavier, an unscrupulous piratic printer, who on other occasions tried to establish rights in '' Shakespeare's plays " which were not Shakespeare's ; and no weight can be assigned to his assertions. Another play acted by the King's men, in March 1605, was Jonson's Volpone^ or The Fox. This was anterior in production to the plays already mentioned. Immediately after- wards we find Jon son in connection with the Black- friars children again, and in prison for writing Eastward Ho. Shakespeare did not act in The Fox; perhaps Jonson was offended at this ; he at any rate did not return to the King's men till 1610. On 4th May, Phillips, Shakespeare's fellow-actor, made his will, and died shortly after. We learn from this document, which gives us many other valuable particulars respecting the members of the company, that Shakespeare and Condell were the two of '' his fellows " whom, next to Hemings, Burbadge, and Sly, his executors, Phillips most highly appreciated ; he left them each a 30s. -piece HIS PUBLIC CAREER. 55 in gold, but to Fletcher, Armin, Cowley, Cooke, and Tooley a 20s.-piece. He also left legacies to Gilburne and Sands his apprentices, and to Beeston his servant. " His fellows " here means the share- holders in the Globe, as contrasted with the *' hired servants," to whom he left ^' £^ amongst them." There were then in 1605 eleven shareholders, Cooke and Tooley having been added since 15th March 1604. On 24th July Shakespeare invested ;^40 in a lease of the tithes of Stratford, Old Stratford, Bishopton, and Welcombe, as had been suggested to him in 1598. In August King James was at Oxford, and among the entertainments presented to him were speeches by three young men of St. John's, who personated the three Sibyls who had prophesied to Banquo. This interlude would necessarily recall to the King's mind the old Macbeth play, which had been probably pre- sented to him in Scotland by the Globe players, and if, as there is Httle reason to doubt, he did write an autograph letter to Shakespeare, it was most likely on this occasion, commanding a fuller version of Macbeth. This play was certainly pro- duced at Court, probably at Shrovetide in March 1605-6, but it has been altered since, condensed and interpolated by dances and songs and a new scene with Hecate in it, no doubt by Middleton 9^ OF THB ^y^ 56 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. in 1622, from whose TVt'tch the songs are taken. On 9th October the Globe company acted before the Mayor and Corporation at Oxford, and then, if not from the King, Shakespeare would be sure to hear of the Sybils interlude. In all, ten plays were acted at Court this winter by the Globe company. Among them was a version of Muce- dorus, with additions. This version has only come down to us in imprints of 1610 and later ; but there was an edition in 1606 mentioned in Beau- clerc's Catalogue, 1781, from which the later title- pages were copied. From the title it appears that it had been revived before the King on Shrove- Sunday night at Whitehall. The original play had been acted about the city, and therefore not later than 1594, before the Chamberlain's men settled at the Theater. The additions are directed against Jonson, whose strictures on monopohes, and sneer at *' the miraculous effects of the Oglio del Scoto " in Volpone, ii. I, must have grievously offended James, who had revived the touching for the king's evil. Jonson had subsequently joined Chapman and Marston in writing Eastward Ho for the Chapel boys, in which the Scots were still more severely satirised, and was evidently, as may be seen from the address prefixed to Volpone, at daggers drawn with the Globe men. Hence, in the Mucedorus HIS PUBLIC CAREER. 57 additions, the allusions to the '^ meagre cannibal/' the " scrambling raven with his meagre beard " (certainly Jonson, the " thin-bearded Hermaphro- dite " in Satiromastix), who had, stirred up by Envy, written a comedy for the Globe filled with " dark sentences pleasing to factious brains ; " which would have led to their restraint, as Eastward Ho did for the Chapel boys, had not the King's players been staid and discreet, and begged pardon of His Majesty on bended knee ^' for their unwilling error." The threatened information must have been in the autumn of 1605. To 1606 no other play than Macbeth can with certainty be traced : and the marked change of metrical style at this epoch points to a period of rest. In all his subsequent plays, many lines end with unemphatic words, such as and, if, which, but and the like, and this change was not introduced gradu- ally but suddenly and decisively. Hence its value as indisputably separating the Fourth Period plays from the preceding. On this ground it is pretty certain that Timon was Shakespeare's next pro- duction ; he only wrote the chief scenes in it, how- ever, and it was finished for the stage by another hand. At this time also, in my opinion, Shakespeare began to write Cymbeline, which he afterwards com- pleted himself. This arrangement of his work 58 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. seems natural ; Lear, Macbeth, Cymheline closing the series founded on Holinshed, and Ttmon, Antony, Coriolanus — the series from Plutarch — succeeding them. A minuter examination of the question will be found in a later part of this work. Of other play-writers* contributions to the Globe in i6o6 there is only one — Pericles, as originally produced by Wilkins, which was ridiculed in The Puritan by Middleton — acted by the Paul's children of this year. Wilkins left writing for the King's men, and (1607) joined the Queen's men at the Curtain. This was probably rumoured to have been caused by some quarrel with Shakespeare, for on 6th August 1607, S. R., The Puritan Widow was published as by W. S., evidently meaning William Shakespeare. Of all the instances in which Shakespeare's name or initials were fraudulently inserted on title-pages, this play and Sir John Oldcastle were the only two in which they were prefixed to plays not even acted by his company. At the Court in the 1606-7 season three Globe plays were presented to the King of Denmark on the occasion of his visit to England, and nine others in the usual course. Antony and Cleopatra may be confidently assigned to 1607. It was entered for publication S. R. on 20th May 1608 with Pericles (no doubt as originally written by Wilkins), but both plays were stayed ; HIS PUBLIC CAREER. 59 the former as having been on the stage only one year, the latter to be superseded by the issue in 1609 o^ the version as altered by Shakespeare. On 2 2d October The Merry Devil of Edmonton was entered S. R. for A. Johnson. The entry for Hunt and Archer on 5 th April 1608 is that of the prose story by Thomas Brewer. The initials T. B. in this latter entry have misled Mr. Halliwell and others to assign the authorship of the play to Tony Brewer. On 26th November Shakespeare's King Lear was entered S. R. as it was played before the King on 26th December 1 606, ^' Saint Stephen's Night at Christmas last." This settles two important questions ; first, the relation of the Quarto text to the Folio — the Quarto being the version played at Court, the Folio that retained by the players for the public stage ; secondly, the existence of a custom in the Globe company of allowing, in cases of altered or revised plays, the version not required for future stage purposes to be issued to the public in print. Many instances of this custom are brought to light in the present treatise. On October 7, Cyril Tourneur's (?) Re- vengers Tragedy was entered S. R. The date of production on the stage is uncertain. It had " been sundry times acted by the King's players." Nor am I aware of the grounds on which the authorship is 6o LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. assigned to Tourneur. It was published anony- mously. On 25th June, Susanna, Shakespeare's daughter, married John Hall, M.A., physician at Stratford. There were thirteen performances this winter at Court by the King's men. In 1608 Shake- speare probably produced Coriolanus. On 21st February Elizabeth Hall was baptized, within eight months from her parents' marriage. The prospect of a continuation of his family, though not of his family name, was some alleviation for Shakespeare of the loss of his youngest brother Edmund, " a player," buried at St. Saviour's, South wark, 31st December 1607, ^'with a forenoon knell of the great bell," cetatis 27. Of Edmund's career in London we know nothing ; but surely he must have belonged to the Globe company. His absence from the actors' lists offers no obstacle to this sup- position ; they are, after that of The Seven Deadly Sins in 1594, confined to names of shareholders and principal actors. And if player for the Globe, why not author? May he not, for instance, have written The Yorkshire Tragedy under his brother's superintendence, and may not this account for its being pubHshed as William Shakespeare's ? All attempts to assign it to any known author have egregiously failed. However this may be, and however poignantly William felt the loss of the HIS PUBLIC CAREER. 6i Benjamin of the family, a severer bereavement awaited him in the death of his mother, buried at Stratford 9th September 1608. It has always been a favourite hypothesis with me that Volumnia was drawn from her as a model of matronly virtue, and it is certain that at this date a final change took place in Shakespeare's manner of writing. His plays since the accession of James had been, with scarcely an exception, tragedies ; from this time they are really, under whatever head they may have hitherto been classed, tragi-comedies, and all turn, as I pointed out many years ago, on the re- uniting of separated members of families. The first of this final group is Marina, the part of Pericles which replaced Wilkins' work, and which was written in this winter and hurriedly printed in 1609 as a practical answer to Wilkins' prose ver- sion, published in 1608, in which he claimed the story as an " infant of his brain." Shakespeare's version must, I think, be placed after his return to London from Stratford, where he remained after his mother's funeral till 1 6th October, when he stood godfather for William Walker. The Court performances this winter were twelve. On 28th January 1609, Troylus and Cressida was entered S. R., not for Roberts, whose intended publication in 1603 had been stayed, but for Bonian and Whalley, 62 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. who issued it with a preface stating that it had never been ** staled with the stage." This false statement was withdrawn in their subsequent re- issue during the same year, but it proves that the period during which the play had been performed in 1602 must have been a very short one; such a statement could not have otherwise been put for- ward with any plausibility. On 20th May the Sonnets were published, with a dedication to their " only begetter," Mr. W. H. " I think that these initials designate Sir William Hervey, to whom Lord Southampton's mother left at her death in November 1607 the greatest part "of her stuff." He was her third husband, and may have been the original suggester to Shakespeare, as a friend to Lord Southampton, that he should write a series of Sonnets to him recommending marriage in 1594, when Southampton had not yet become devoted to *' the fair Mrs. Vernon," and was entangled in the affair of the frail Avisa. In 1609 he was busily occupied with the Virginian company, and promot- ing voyages for American discovery, an allusion to which underlies the Dedication " wisheth the well- wishing adventurer in setting forth," adventurer being the current phrase for explorer of unknown regions. On 7th June Shakespeare's cousin, Thomas Green, then residing at New Place, Strat- HIS PUBLIC CAREER. 63 ford, issued a final precept in his behalf against one Hornby, who had become bail for John Addenbroke, in a matter of debt for £6. This litigation had begun in August 1608 : juries had been summoned on 2 1st December and 15 th February, and then Addenbroke absconded, leaving Hornby to be an- swerable. The plague being prevalent this year, there were no Christmas performances at Court, and not many on the public stage. Cymheline was Shakespeare's only production. In its present state it has evidently been subjected to revision and to alteration for some revival after Shakespeare's death, when the doggerel in the vision in iv. 4 was inserted ; originally, no doubt, the ghosts appeared in dumb show to music. The Globe players received £'^Q as a compensation for being restrained from playing in London during six weeks, i.e., during August and September, when the bills of mortality show the plague to have been at its height. In January 1610 the Revels children left the Blackfriars Theatre, and set up with a new organi- sation under Rossiter at Whitefriars the new pri- vate stage. It appears from the statement of C. Burbadge, in the 1635 documents discovered by Mr. Halliwell, that that family then bought up the remainder of the lease from Evans, and took some 64 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. of the Revels boys, now grown up, to strengthen the Globe company. Among these were Under- wood and Ostler; but as C. Burbadge also names Field, who did not join the King's men till 1615 or 161 6, his subsequent statement that they set up men-players, Shakespeare, Hemings, Condell, &c., in Blackfriars at that date, is not to be taken as necessarily exact. The King's men undoubtedly took possession of Blackfriars for their own per- formances in 1614 or 161 5, after the Globe had been burned and rebuilt ; but there is not a trace of them until then in connection with this private house except this ex parte statement of C. Burbadge, made for a special purpose, in a plea which is studiously ambiguous. But there is evidence that other companies acted there. Field's Amends for Ladies was performed there by the Lady Eliza- beth's company and the Duke of York's (afterwards Prince Charles'). This performance must have taken place during a temporary union between the Prince's men and the Lady Elizabeth's, to which latter the play and its author were properly attached ; but that the Duke of York's acted continuously at Blackfriars from 1610 to 161 5, is very probable. It is not Ukely that a company under such patronage, and admitted to Court performances every Christmas, should have been merely a strolling company, and HIS PUBLIC CAREER. 65 there was no other theatre for them to perform in. The King's men held the Globe, Prince Henry's (afterwards the Palgrave's) the Fortune, the Queen's the Bull and the Curtain, the Queen's Revels' boys Whitefriars, and Lady Elizabeth's at first the Swan till 161 2, and after its abandonment the newly renovated Hope in 16 14, and then the rebuilt Cockpit or Phoenix. There is no proof that Shake- speare ever acted at Blackfriars ; there is strong presumption to the contrary as to his supposed shares in that theatre : it was the '' private inheri- tance " of the Burbadges, and that the King's men had shares in it at this time rests on the evidence of forged documents and mischievously fertile imagi- nations, to which the purchase of twenty acres of land at Stratford by Shakespeare from the Combes in June seems to require access of capital to make this new acquisition feasible. Winter's Tale was certainly produced early this year, before Jonson's Alchemist J which was acted and entered S. R., October 3, but was, however, '' stayed " for the usual reasons, and did not get published till 16 1 2. The Address to the Reader (no doubt dating 16 10) contains one of Jonson's numerous allusions to the " dance of antics " in Winter's Tale. Jonson, who had produced Epicene for the Chapel children in 1609, had returned to the King's men when the 66 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. boys left Blackfriars. Shakespeare's last play this year, and final finished contribution to the stage, was The Tempest, produced about November, after the news that the ships of Sir T. Gates at the Ber- mudas had not been destroyed. This play as we have it has unfortunately been abridged for Court performances, probably by Beaumont in 1612 or 161 3, to whom the insertion of the Masque may confidently be attributed. There were fifteen winter performances at Court in 1610-11. The loss of Shakespeare was repaired as well as circumstances would permit by the accession of Beaumont and Fletcher to the King's company in 161 1. In that year they produced their master- pieces Philaster, a King and no King and The MaicCs Tragedy : in 161 2 The Woman^s Prize (by Fletcher alone), the play of Cardenas (probably the original form of Lovers Pilgrimage), and The Captain. Jon- son contributed Catiline in 161 1, and Webster The Duchess of Malfi in 161 2. The Second Maiden^ s Tragedy (by the author of The Revenger^ s Tragedy, I think) was also produced in 161 1. At Court the unusual number of twenty-two plays was acted in the 161 1 winter and twenty-eight in 161 2. These must have included nearly every play they pos- sessed ; and the fact that the whole, or nearly so, of Shakespeare's plays were revived at Court in HIS PUBLIC CAREER. 67 these two years makes his retirement in 16 10 to my mind nearly a certainty, and accounts for the not very felicitous praise of his ^' copious industry " by Webster in the Dedication of his White Devil in 161 2. Webster couples the retired Shakespeare with Dekker and Heywood : but Jonson's works he speaks of as " laboured and understanding," Beaumont's and Fletcher's as " no less worthy composures." This higher praise is given to the writers who like himself were then contributing to the Globe repertory. He mentions no one else but Chapman of " full and heightened style." Are we to attribute to this mention of him the tradition that Chapman wrote The Second Maiden^ s Tragedy ? On nth September 161 1 Shakespeare's name occurs *' in the margin, as if a later insertion " (says Mr. Halliwell) of a list of Stratford donors '* towards the charge of prosecuting the bill in Parliament for the better repair of the highways." In 161 2 Lane, Greene, and Shakespeare filed a bill before Lord Ellesmere complaining that some of the lessees of the Stratford tithes refused to contribute their proper shares of a reserved rent. It appears from this document that Shakespeare's income from this source was £60. In the same year Heywood, in his Apology for Actors, complained of W. Jaggard's having printed in The Passionate Pilgrim, 3d 68 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. edition, two love epistles taken from his Troia Britannica, as by W. Shakespeare, ''which might put the world in opinion I might steal them from him ; " he adds that he knows the author was much offended for Jaggard's presuming to make bold with his name. The name was in consequence with- drawn altogether from the title-page. Notwith- standing this, many modern editors print The Passionate Pilgrim as Shakespeare's. On 4th February 161 3 Richard Shakespeare was buried at Stratford ; whether the Gilbert Shakespeare, *' adolescens," who was buried 3d February 1612, was also a brother of William's, is doubtful, but likely. On lOth March 161 3 Shakespeare bought of Henry Walker a house and yard near Black- friars Theatre for £i4.0y of which £60 remained on mortgage (one of the trustees being in 161 8 John Heming, Shakespeare's fellow-actor) : he leased the house to John Robinson for ten years. On 29th June the Globe was burned down. It caught fire during the performance of All is True (Henry VIII.) This was not the play as we have it — which is a later version by Massinger and Fletcher, written for the Blackfriars Theatre, and containing only three scenes that can be attributed to Shake- speare — but a play in which there was a fool's part. Wotton describes it as *' the play of Henry VI 11.,'^ HIS PUBLIC CAREER. 69 but Lorkin says it was a new play called All is True, representing some principal pieces of Henry VIII. Whether new play or not it was probably by Shake- speare, written c. 1609, and portions of it remain imbedded in that now extant by Fletcher and Mas- singer c. 16 1 7, the original MS. having perished in the fire. Just at the same time one Lane had been maligning Mrs. Hall, Shakespeare's daughter, in connection with Ralph Smith. Lane was sum- moned before the Ecclesiastical Court at Worcester on 15th July and excommunicated on the 27th. There were only seven plays performed at Court by the King's men in the winter 161 3-14, all their principal writers — Fletcher, Beaumont, Jonson, Webster — having left them after the Globe fire. Surely this is not consistent with the statement of C. Burbadge that they had taken the Blackfriars building to their own use. No new play can be traced to them till 161 5, when the Globe had been^'^ rebuilt, and the Prince Charles' men had gone to the Curtain. Then they certainly did take the Black- friars to themselves, and with an excellent staff of writers — Jonson, Fletcher, Massinger, and Field — they occupied it as well as the new Globe. A letter of John Chamberlain's to Sir Dudley Carleton, 5th January 161 5, says of the stage in general : " Of * It had been reopened in June 1614. 70 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. five new plays there is not one that pleases, and therefore they are driven to furbish over their old." Yet Jonson's Bartholomew Fair was one of these 1 6 14 plays acted at Court. I suspect that Lady Elizabeth's players were not so well liked as the King's, and that Shakespeare and Beaumont were greatly missed. Fletcher and Massinger were not yet able to replace them even at Court. In July 1614 John Combe left a legacy of £^ to Shakespeare; this fact disposes of the silly story of Shakespeare having satirised him in infantile doggerel. In the autumn William Combe, the squire of Wilcombe, originated a proposal to enclose com- mon fields in the neighbourhood ; he was supported by Shakespeare, who had been guaranteed against prospective loss by Replingham, Combe's agent. The corporation, through his cousin Greene, the town-clerk, remonstrated with him in November when he was in London, and again in December wrote to him representing the inconveniences and loss that would be caused. The matter dragged on to September 161 5, and then fell through. This is the last notice of Shakespeare's action in any public matter. On loth February 16 16 his daughter Judith was married to Thomas Quiney, vintner, four years her junior, without licence, whence a fine and threat of excommunication at the Worcester HIS PUBLIC CAREER. 71 ^ Ecclesiastical Court : and on 25 th April Shake- speare was buried. His will had been executed on 25th March. It was not regularly engrossed, but a corrected draft, originally prepared for copy- ing and completion on 25th January, but evidently neglected until the sudden emergency of Shake- speare's illness. It appears from this document that Judith's marriage portion was to have been ;^ioo, on condition of her husband's settHng on her ;£"I50 in land; if this condition was fulfilled within three years he was left ;^I50 to his own use, if not it was strictly settled on her and her children. This ;^I50 is independent of ;^ioo in discharge of her marriage portion, and £s^ conditional on her sur- rendering her interest in the Rowington manor to Susanna Hall. To Joan Hart, his sister, whose husband had been buried on 17th April, was left wearing apparel, ;^20, a life-interest in Henley Street, and ;^5 each to her sons. To Susanna Hall he left all his real estate settled in tail male, with the usual remainders over. To Elizabeth Hall all his plate except the broad silver-gilt bowl, which went to Judith Quiney. To his fellows, Hemings, Burbadge, and Condell, £1, 6s. 8d. each for rings ; the usual legacies to the executprs, poor, &c. ; and to his wife his second best bed. Of course she was fully provided for by freebench in the Rowing- 72 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. ton copyhold, and dower on the rest of the property ; nevertheless, it is strange that she does not appear as executrix, that she had no Hfe-interest left her in house or furniture, and that in the draft of the will, as made in January, her name does not appear to have been mentioned at all. It is only in the subsequent interlineations that her bequest appears. ( n ) SECTION II. THE PERSONAL CONNECTIONS OF SHAKESPEARE WITH OTHER POETS. One of the objects of the present treatise is to bring into clearer light the relations of Shakespeare with contemporary dramatists. Strangely enough this has scarcely been attempted in earlier biographies. His dealings in malt have been carefully chronicled : his connections with poets have been slurred over. It will be useful, therefore, to gather up the scattered notices of personal contact between him and his fellows in dramatic production. Mere allusions to his works, whether complimentary or otherwise, will not come under this category. Such will be found collected, and well collected, in Dr. Ingleby's Century of Praise; but they consist almost entirely of slight references to his published works, and have no bearing of importance on his career. Nor, indeed, have we any extended material of any kind to aid us in this investigation ; one source of infor- 74 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. mation, which is abundant for most of his contem- poraries, being in his case entirely absent. Neither as addressed to him by others, nor by him to others, do any commendatory verses exist in connection with any of his or other men's works pubHshed in his Hfetime — a notable fact, in whatever way it may be explained. Nor can he be traced in any per- sonal contact beyond a very limited circle, although the fanciful might-have-beens so largely indulged in by his biographers might at first lead us to an opposite conclusion. With John Lyly, the founder of English Comedy, he seems to have had no personal intercourse, although the reproduction by him of many of Lyly's puns and conceits, and some few of his dramatic situations, distinctly prove that he had carefully examined his published plays. Nor does the solitary reference to Shakespeare in Greene's Groats- worth of Wit, however it may display strong personal feeling, lead us to suppose that there had been any personal relations between these dramatists ; in fact, the very wording of the passage properly under- stood distinctly disproves the existence of such relations. Of all the dramatists who had preceded him on the London stage the only two with whom he can be even conjecturally brought in personal contact before the opening of the Rose Theatre in HIS PERSONAL CONNECTIONS. 75 1592 are Robert Wilson and George Peele. It is unlikely that he should have begun his career as a novice and journeyman independent of tutor or coadjutor, and a minute examination of the careers of these two dramatists leads me to infer that they were connected with the same company as Shakespeare in 1590— i. In any case, they were his immediate models in his early work in several respects. It is from Wilson that his liking for doggerel rhymes and alternately rhyming stanzas was derived : it is from Peele that his love tragedy of Romeo and Juliet — his only early tragedy — derived, in its earliest form, as acted in 1591, what- ever in it was not Shakespeare's own. Wilson was probably his tutor or coadjutor in Comedy and Peele in Tragedy. But this is after all conjecture ; on the other hand, it is certain that in 1592—3 a greater than Peele or Wilson was writing for the same company as Shakespeare, and necessarily in close connection with him. For Marlowe he cer- tainly had a sinjcere regard : from his poem of Hero and Leander Shakespeare makes the only direct quotation to be found in his plays ; on his historical plays Shakespeare, after his friend's decease, bestowed in addition, reyision, and completion, a greater amount of minute work than on his own ; and the earlier of his own histories were distinctly built on 76 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. lines similar to those of Edward 11. and Edward III. The relation of Shakespeare's Histories to Marlowe's is far more intimate than that of his Comedies or of Romeo to any predecessor's productions. I can- not find a trace of direct connection between Shake- speare and any other poet than these mentioned, during the life of Lord Strange. His connection with Lord Southampton seems to have been more intimate than any with his fellow-poets. In the Sonnets addressed to him there is mention of other pens who have dedicated poems to his lordship, and whom Shakespeare for poetical purposes professes to regard as dangerous rivals. The only persons known to have dedicated anything to Southampton are Nash and Markham, although George Peele had written a high eulogy of him in his Honour of the Garter in 1593. Markham's dedication is one of four prefixed to his poem on The Tragedy of Sir Richard Grenvile (S. R. 9th September 1595) ; (i.) to Charles Lord Montjoy (in prose) ; (2.) to Robert Earl of Sussex (Sonnet) ; (3.) to the Earl of Southampton (Sonnet) ; (4.) to Sir Edward Wing- field (Sonnet). I am not aware of any previous attempt to identify Markham with the rival alluded to in the Sonnets of Shakespeare, and yet there are many coincidences of language which would lead to this conclusion. Take Sonnet jZ^ for instance. HIS PERSONAL CONNECTIONS. 77 " Thine eyes . . . have added feathers to the learned's wing and given grace a double majesty." In Markham we find in I, " hath given wings to my youngling Muse ; " and in 3, '* whose eyes doth crown the most victorious pen " (cf. in I, ^' that thine eyes may lighten/' &c.) ; and in 4, the double majesty of the grace, " vouchsafe to grace my work and me, Gracing the soul beloved of heaven and thee." I do not find in Markham the '^ affable familiar ghost " of Sonnet 86, but this and other allusions may have referred to his Thyrsis and Daphne (S. R. 23d April 1593, five days after the entry of Venus and Adonis) which is now unfor- tunately lost ; and there is something like it in the Grenvile Tragedy, in which Markham calls on Grenvile's soul to ^' sit on his hand " while he writes, which the ghost apparently does until it is dismissed to its ** rest" at the end of the poem. Markham was an exceedingly learned man and the '^ proud full sail of his great verse " would well apply to his stilted and conceited effusion. He does not in it allude to Southampton's beauty, though he may have done so in his Thyrsis, but he calls him " Bright lamp of virtue!'^ with which compare Sonnet 79 : '' He. lends thee virtue, and he stole that word from thy behaviour." On the whole I incline to regard Markham as the rival poet of Shakespeare's 78 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. Sonnets. As to Nash, his supposed satirical allusions to Shakespeare, as set forth by the fertile fancy of Mr. Simpson, have no more real existence than the allusions discovered by other like imagina- tions in the writings of Spenser. His only notice of Shakespeare's writings is the well-known mention of the representation of Talbot on the stage, and that is highly comphmentary. He may be included under the *' every alien pen " of Sonnet 78, but he is not (as I once thought he was) the rival poet alluded to. It may be of interest in connection with this matter to note that in The Dumb Knight, in which Markham certainly wrote i. 2, ii. i, iii. 4, and iv. 2, Venus and Adonis is satirised as a lascivious poem. Of intercourse with other dramatists while a member of the Chamberlain's company, the first instance is that with Lodge and Drayton. That the connection with Drayton terminated in a mis- understanding is clear from the excision of the favourable notice of Shakespeare's Lucrece from his Matilda, and from Drayton's taking the chief part in writing Sir John Oldcastle, the object of which was to keep alive the ill-feeling produced by the unfor- tunate adoption of that name from the old play of Henry V, for the character afterwards called Sir John Falstaff. This connection with Drayton ended in 1597, that with Lodge in 1599. If I am right HIS PERSONAL CONNECTIONS. 79 in my attribution of part authorship to Lodge in Henry VI. and The Taming of the Shrew in its original form, Shakespeare revised and altered his plays, but not till after Lodge's retirement from connection with the Chamberlain's company. Soon after this, in 1 601, he founded his Hamlet on Kyd's, but with Kyd himself I have not been able to find that he was at any time personally connected. Nevertheless, as regards mere outward form, Kyd was the chief model for the great tragedies of Hamlet^ Lear, &c. Of course, as regards all poetic essentials, his influence on Shakespeare cannot for a moment be compared to Marlowe's. With Marston, Chapman, and Dekker, Shake- speare's relations were ephemeral, in connection with the great stage quarrel of 15 99- 1 60 1, and in no respect personal, unless we suppose that he had a hand in hiring Dekker to oppose Jonson. My own belief is that he was away in Scotland when Satiromastix was produced, and that the division of the company left in London did this without his knowledge. With Jonson his relations were evi- dently personal and of very varied nature. He probably introduced him to the Chamberlain's com- pany in 1598; he certainly acted in his play of Every Man in his Humour : he did not act in Every Man out of his Humour — and then Jonson joined the 8o LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. Chapel children, and entered on his three years' struggle with Marston, Dekker, &c. In 1601 Shake- speare satirised these children in Hamlet, and about the same time administered the " purge " to Jonson mentioned in The Return from Parnassus : at the end of the same year, he, Jonson, Chapman, and Marston were contributors to Chester's Lovers Martyr. In 1603 Jonson, who had again joined the Chamberlain's men, wrote Sejanus in conjunction with some one (with Shakespeare in my opinion), and got into trouble for it. Shakespeare certainly acted in this play, and must at that time have been on good terms with Jonson. All the allusions to Shakespeare's Henry V., &c., in the Prologue at the revival of Every Man in his Humour in 1601 by the Chapel children, and the purge administered to Jon- son, had been forgiven and forgotten on both sides. But in 1605 Jonson wrote Volpone, in which Shake- speare did not act, and which gave offence at Court : and this caused a new disagreement between him and the King's men (formerly the Chamberlain's). He left them, and with Chapman and Marston wrote Eastward Ho, in which Hamlet is ridiculed, and for allusions to Scotland in which, similar to those in Volpone, the authors were imprisoned. The King's men retaliated with the additions to Mucedorus, of which more elsewhere, and Jonson did not join them HIS PERSONAL CONNECTIONS. 8i again for years. He wrote for the Chapel children in 1609, and not till 16 10, at the end of the year, when Shakespeare's dramatic career was just expir- ing, did he produce The Alchemist for them at the Globe. It is to be hoped that these two great drama- tists were not at open enmity during the later part of Shakespeare's life ; but all record of any real friendship between them ends in 1603, and little value is to be attributed either to the vague tradi- tions of Jonson's visiting him at Stratford, or to the abundant praise lavished on him by Jonson in commendatory verses after his death. Much more important for ascertaining the real relations existing between them are the allusions to The Tempest and Winter* s Tale so abundantly scattered through all Jonson's plays from 1609 to 16 16, while Shake- speare was yet alive. Of other dramatists who were connected with Shakespeare in King James's time I know only of Tourneur and Wilkins — the former simply as an author writing for Shakespeare's company, the latter as the playwright who wrote Pericles in its original form : the history of the production of this play has already been given. As to Beaumont, Fletcher, Webster, &c., who after 1 6 10 wrote for the King's men, and the numerous contemporaries who wrote for other companies, no 82 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. trace of any intercourse with Shakespeare, personal or otherwise, remains to us, though abundant guesses and hypotheses utterly foundationless* will be found in the voluminous Shakespearian literature already existing. The truth appears to be that Shake- speare at no time sought for a large circle of acquaintance, and that his position as almost sole provider of plays for his company relieved him of that miscellaneous comradeship which was the bane of Dekker, Heywood, and many other gifted writers of the time. Of any one of these a far larger personal connection can be proved than I believe ever existed in the case of Shakespeare : and to this we no doubt are greatly indebted for the depth and roundness of those great plays, which could never have been conceived without much solitude, much suffering, and much concentration. * The reader should especially beware of a most absurd identifi- cation of Shakespeare with the Crispinus of Jonson's Poetaster, recently put forth by Mr. J. Feis in his Shakspere atid Montaigne. It is a pity that an essay, of which the first four chapters are so valuable, should be disfigured by the palpable chronological and other blunders in the latter portions of the volume. ( 83 ) SECTION III. ANNALS ON WHICH THE PRECEDING SECTIONS ARE FOUNDED. Until April 1564. On 26th April 1564 was baptized William, son of John Shakespeare of Stratford-on-Avon and Mary Arden, at that time an only child, two girls born previously having died in their infancy. John Shakespeare was son of Richard Shakespeare of Snitterfield, where his brother Henry also resided : he was a glover, who speculated in wool, corn, &c. He lived in Henley Street, Stratford, as early as 29th April 1552, having left his father about 1550, and in October 1556 purchased two small estates in that town — one that is now shown as the birth- place, the other in Greenhill Street. In 1557 he married Mary Arden, whose father, Robert, a yeo- man, had contracted a second marriage with Agnes Hill, widow, and in the settlement then made had reserved to Mary the reversion to estates at Wilme- 84 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. cote and Snitterfield. Some part of this land was occupied by Richard Shakespeare's grandfather. Mary Arden also received under her father's will, dated 24th November 1556, a considerable sum in money, and the fee-simple of Asbies at Wilme- cote, a house with sixty acres of land. In 1557 John was a burgess, a member of the corporation, and by choice of the Court Leet ale-taster to the borough, sworn to look to the assize and good- ness of bread, ale, or beer. In September 1558 he was one of the four constables under the rules of the Court Leet. On 6th October 1559 he was again chosen constable and one of the four affeerors for determining fines under the borough bye-laws. In 1561 he was again chosen afFeeror, and one of the borough chamberlains, which office he held till the end of 1563. 1564. In July the plague broke out in Stratford, and continued to December. There died 238 in that half-year, no Shakespeares among them. John Shakespeare had had an early lesson in sanita- tion by way of a fine of 1 2d. in April 1552 for having a muck heap in front of his door in Henley Street, within a stone's-throw of one of the public ANNALS. 85 stores of filth. He now contributed fairly to relieve the poor and plague-stricken ; about I2d. per month. 1565- In March John Shakespeare with his former colleague made up the chamberlain's accounts from September 1563 to 1564. Neither of them could sign their names. 1566. In February he again made up these accounts, and was paid £2^, 2s. /d. '' for a rest of old debt " by the corporation. On 13th October his son Gilbert was baptized. 1567. In September, Ralph Perrot, brewer, John Shake- speare, and Ralph Cawdrey, butcher, were nomi- nated for the office of High Bailiff" or Mayor. Cawdrey was elected. For the first time the name appears as '^ Mr." John Shakespeare. 1568. On 4th September '' Mr. John Shakysper " was chosen High Bailiff". He was succeeded the next year by Robert Salisbury. 86 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. 1569. On 15 th April John Shakespeare's third daughter (named Joan after her deceased elder sister) was baptized. 1571. On 28th September John Shakespeare's fourth daughter Anne was baptized. William was now seven, then the usual age for the commencement of grammar-school education, the use of the Absey book and horn-book having been acquired at home. Lily's Accidence and the Sententice Pueriles were the usual text-books for beginners in Latin. Shakespeare had some knowledge of Latin, and a little French ; all beyond this is very proble- matical. T573- On I ith March, Richard, John Shakespeare's third son, was baptized. 1575. John Shakespeare bought two houses in Strat- ford. 1578. In January John Shakespeare paid only the amount of borough taxes paid by other aldermen. ANNALS. 87 William was then fourteen, the usual age for com- mencing apprenticeship. There is a tradition given by Aubrey that he was apprenticed to a butcher. I believe this to be a myth, originating in the epithet " kill-cow," often applied to tragic actors. Some writers still think that the tradition may be relied on. Another story traced to the parish clerk of 1693 is that he followed his father's profession. May be so ; may not be. 1579. In Easter Term Asbies was mortgaged to Edmund Lambert for ;£'40, to revert if repayment be made before Michaelmas 1580. On 4th July Anne Shakespeare was buried ; in the chamberlain's accounts occurs this item : ** For the bell and pall for Mr. Shaxper's daughter, 8d.," the highest fee in the list. On 15 th October John Shakespeare and his wife convey their interest in Snitterfield to Robert Webbe. Agnes Arden's will is dated in this year. 1580. On 3d May, Edmund, son of John Shakespeare, was baptized. On or before 29th September, the money in dis- 88 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. charge of the Asbies mortgage was tendered and refused unless other moneys due were also paid. 1581. On 19th January the goods of Agnes Arden, deceased, were appraised. On 1st September Richard Hathaway of Shottery made his will. 1582. On 28th November the marriage bond between WilHam Shagspere and Anne Hathway was given, under condition that neither party had been precontracted to another person, and that the said William Shagspere should not proceed to so- lemnization with the said Anne Hathway with- out consent of her friends. They were to be married with one asking of the banns. The bondsmen were Fulk Sandells and John Richard- son, — the seal is R. H., which may be Richard Hathaway's. • 1583- On May 26th Susanna their daughter was baptized. It is assumed that a precontract existed between the parents which, according to the cus- ANNALS. 89 torn of the time, " was not legally recognised, but it invalidated a subsequent union of either of the parties with any one else " (Halliwell, Outlines^ p. 45). The reader must form his own opinion. Taking into consideration the low morality of the time in such matters, the fact that Anne Hathaway was twenty-six, and Shakespeare eighteen in 1582, the practice still not unknown in rural districts of co- habitation under conditional promise of marriage, should the probable birth of a child make it neces- sary or prudent, the fact that from 1587 to 1597 we have no evidence that Shakespeare even saw his wife, and the palpable indications in the Sonnets that during this interval he was intriguing with another woman — for my own part I cannot help adopting De Quincey's view that he was entrapped into some such conditional promise by this lady and kept his promise honourably. Compare on the precontract question the plays of The Miseries of Enforced Marriage by Wilkins, which is founded on the contemporary history of the same Calverley who is the murderer in The Yorkshire Tragedy^ with Shakespeare's own views in 1604 in Measure for Measure; his opinions in Twelfth Night, ii. 4 (early part, c. 1592), and Midsummer Nighfs Dream, i. i, on wives that are older than their hus- bands : and, by way of showing that his plays do 90 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. discover sometimes his personal feelings, Valen- tine's resignation of Silvia in The Two Gentlemen of VeronUy with the story involved in the Sonnets of Shakespeare's own transfer of his illicit love. 1585- February 2. Hamnet and Judith, Shakspeare's twin children, were baptized at Stratford-on-Avon. By April 26th he had certainly attained his majority, and his apprenticeship had probably expired. 1585-7. Three or four years after his union with Anne Hathaway, he had, says Rowe, *'by a misfortune common enough to young fellows, fallen into ill company, and, amongst them, some, that made a frequent practice of deer stealing, engaged him with them more than once in robbing a park, that belonged to Sir Thomas Lucy of Charlecote, near Stratford ; for this he was prosecuted by that gentleman, as he thought, somewhat too severely, and in order to revenge that ill usage made a ballad upon him, and though this, probably the first essay of his poetry, be lost, yet it is said to have been so very bitter that it redoubled the prosecution against him to that degree that he ANNALS. 91 was obliged to leave his business and family in Warwickshire for some time, and shelter himself in London." Whether this tradition be well founded or no, we are compelled by subsequent events to place the date of Shakespeare's leaving Stratford in or about 1587; and whether there be any truth in the story traced to Davenant or not, that he held horses at the play-house door, while their owners were witnessing performances inside, it is certain that he was very soon connected with the stage, first as actor, then as dramatic writer. It becomes therefore of importance to ascertain if possible the specific company with which he ori- ginally joined. In the latter part of 1585 there were two regular theatres existing in London, the Theater and the Curtain. It clearly appears from a report by Recorder Fleetwood preserved in the Lansdown MSS. that at Whitsuntide 1584 these were occupied by the Queen's players and those of Lord Arundel. It is not clear that a third com- pany, that of Lord Hunsdon, acted at the Theater : although Mr. J. O. H. Phillipps (whom I most usually refer to under his former and better known name of Halliwell) assures us that it is so. It is true that the "owner of the Theater," whom he takes to be a temporary occupier of that 92 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. building, but whom I regard as the ground land- lord, Giles AUeyn, is called a servant of Lord Huns- don's, and that a company of actors, called Lord Hunsdon's men, acted at Court 27th December 1582; but it does not follow that these men were occupiers of the Theater. In fact the only com- panies anyhow known to us as in London in 1585 are the two already mentioned. It is by no means likely a priori^ nor would it agree with the passages hereafter to be referred to in the writings of Greene and Nash, that Shakespeare should immediately on his appearance in London obtain employment in either. But there was a third company not noticed in Collier's Annals of the Stage, into which he may easily have obtained admittance. When the Queen's company was formed in 8th March 1582-3, by the selection of twelve players from the companies of the two Dudleys, Earls of Leicester and Warwick, there must have been sufficient men left unemployed to form another company. These were probably still retained by the Earl of Leices- ter : for in a letter from Sir Philip Sidney, dated Utrecht, 24th March 1575-6, mention is made of ''Will, the Earl of Leicester's jesting player," who had gone with the Earl to the Netherlands in December 1575. Thomas Heywood, in his Apology for Actors^ 1612, tells us that "The ANNALS. 93 King of Denmark, father to him that now reigneth, entertained into his service a company of English comedians, commended unto him by the honour- able Earl of Leicester." This King of Denmark, Frederick IL, died in 1588, and the exact date of the transaction is fixed by documents dated October 1586, in which we find that five of these actors had been transferred from the service of Frederick IL of Denmark to that of Christian L, Duke of Saxony. I am far from wishing to adopt the conjecture of Mr. Bruce that ^'jesting Will" was Shakespeare ; but when among the names of these five actors — Thomas King, Thomas Stephen, George Bryan, Thomas Pope, Robert Persie — we find two. Pope and Bryan, that are identical with those of two actors in the very first list extant of the first company with which we can positively connect Shakespeare as an actor ; when we find this same company acting at Stratford in 158/; at the very time that Shakespeare's disappearance from all known connection with that town for nine years commences ; when we find among a list of plays that had been acted by the English in Germany Hester and Ahasuerus, Titus Andronicus [and Vespasian'], both of which we shall trace to Shakespeare's company ; when we also find a version of the Corambis Hamlet existing early in 94 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. the same country— then I think we are justified in saying that there is great hkehhood of this com- pany having been the one in which Shakespeare found his first employment. If so, he accompanied it in all its fortunes, and never (as we shall see) forsook it for another. 1586. Meanwhile in London the plague had prevailed to such an extent that the theatres were shut up during 1586. It was not then during this year that Shakespeare held horses at stage-doors, or obtained employment in London theatres. But at the end of the year Lord Leicester's players re- turned to England, and in January 1586-87 are mentioned together with the Queen's, the Admiral's, and the Earl of Oxford's, in a letter to Walsingham from a spy of his, which is preserved in the Har- leian MSS. 1587. This same company, the Earl of Leicester's men, visited Stratford- on-A von in 1587. I have not been able to trace their previous presence there since 1576, although other companies paid frequent visits to this town. It is singular that in this year. ANNALS. 95 the only one in which this company visited Strat- ford during the twelve years intervening between the birth and death of Hamnet Shakespeare, we find also the only record of the poet's presence in the place of his nativity. I give this in the words of Mr. Halliwell. "In 1578 his parents had borrowed the sum of ^40 on the security of his mother's estate of Asbies, from their connexion, Edmund Lambert of Barton-on-the-Heath. The loan remaining unpaid, and the mortgage dying iif March 1587, his son and heir John was naturally desirous of having the matter settled. John Shake- speare being at that time in prison for debt, and obviously unable to furnish the money, it was arranged shortly afterwards that Lambert should, on cancelling the mortgage and paying also the sum of £20y receive from the Shakespeares an absolute title to the estate. His offer would perhaps not have been made had it not been ascertained that the eldest son William had a contingent interest, derived no doubt from a settlement, and that his assent was essential to the security of a convey- ance. The proposed arrangement was not com- pleted, but " the poet's sanction to it is recorded. I believe that immediately after this, in 1587, Shakespeare left Stratford either with or in order to join Lord Leicester's company. 96 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. 1588. The Earl of Leicester died on 4th September 1588. Previously to this date the company of players acting under his patronage had played in London, probably at the Cross-Keys in Bishopsgate Street, and more frequently had travelled in the country. At the death of Dudley, they had of course to seek for a new patron, and no doubt found one in Ferdinando, Lord Strange, whose com- pany (containing as we shall see some of the actors already known as Leicester's men) are first trace- able in 1589. An earher company bearing the title of Lord Strange's men, c. 1582, seem to have been merely acrobats or posture-mongers. But before entering on the history of this company under its new name, of which we know Shakespeare to have been a member, we must note some particulars re- garding other dramatists, especially Marlowe, Greene, and Nash, which indirectly concern Shakespeare, and have hitherto been wrongly interpreted. In 1587, when the Admiral's men re-opened after the plague, they produced, in what succession we need not here determine, Greene's Orlando and Alphonsus of Arragon, Peele's Batik of Alcazar^ and Marlowe's Tamberlaine. Those plays are enume- rated in Peele's Farewell, 1589, as — ANNALS. 97 " Mahomet's pow, and mighty Tamberlaine, King Charlemagne, Tom Stukeley, and the rest." '' Mahomet's pow " is the head of Mahomet in Alphon- S74s; King Charlemagne was probably a character in the complete play of Orlando, of which only a muti- lated copy has come down to us ; Tom Stukeley is the hero of The Battle of Alcazar ; and " the rest " most likely indicate Lodge's Marhis and Sylla and Marlowe's Faustus. Greene and Peele wrote no more for this company, but in 1587 removed to the Queen's men, who had been travelling in the coun- try. On 29th March 1588 Greene's Perimedes the Blacksmith was entered on the Stationers' Registers. In the introduction Greene attacks Marlowe and Lodge, who had remained with the Admiral's men, in a passage worth quoting : ^' I keep my old course still to palter up something in prose, using mine old posy still, omne tulit punctum; although lately two gentlemen poets made two madmen of Rome beat it out of their paper bucklers, and had it in derision, for that I could not make my verses jet upon the stage in tragical buskins, every word fill- ing the mouth like the fa-burden of Bow-bell, daring God out of heaven with that atheist Tamberlaine or blaspheming with the mad priest of the sun. But let me rather openly pocket up the ass at Diogenes' 98 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. hand than wantonly set out such impious instances of intolerable poetry. Such mad and scoffing poets that have poetical spirits as bred of Merlin's race, if there be any in England that set the end of scholarism in an English blank verse, I think either it is the humour of a novice that tickles them with self-love, or too much frequenting the hot-house (to use the German proverb) hath sweat out all the greatest part of their wits." For the fuller understanding of this satire it may be noted that no '^ priest of the sun " is known in an early play except in The Looking-glass for London and England by Lodge and Greene, which is certainly of later date than Perimedes, yet may indicate Lodge's liking for that character ; that Diogenes is the name assumed by Lodge in his CatharoSj 1591, and that Marlowe's name was written Merlin as often as Marlowe. There can be no doubt as to the persons aimed at, nor of the effect of the satire, for both of them left off writing for the Admiral's men ; and Marlowe during the next two years pro- duced The Jew of Malta, which can be traced to the Queen's company, and together with Greene, Lodge, and Peele produced the plays of The Troublesome Reign of King John, and The First PaH of York and Lancaster on which 2 Henry VL is founded. The internal evidence for the authorship of these ANNALS. 95 last-mentioned plays is very strong : they were, however, published anonymously. 1589. Before the entry of Greene's Menaphon on the Stationers' Registers on 23d August 1589, Hamlet and The Taming of a Shrew must have been repre- sented by Pembroke's men, and Marlowe must have left the Queen's company. As Menaphon is acces- sible in Professor Arber's reprint to the general reader, it will be sufficient to refer to it here with- out quoting passages in full. That Greene refers so satirically to Marlowe as to prevent our supposing that at this date they could be writing jointly for the same theatre, is clear from a hitherto unnoticed passage in p. 54 : ^' Whosoever descanted of that love told you a Canterbury tale ; some prophetical fullmouth, that, as he were a Coblet's eldest son, would by the last tell where another's shoe wrings." Marlowe or Merlin was a shoemaker's son of Can- terbury. That Doron in the story is meant for the author of The Taming of a Shrew was shown by Mr. R. Simpson by comparing Doron's speech in p. 74 : " White as the hairs that grow on Father Boreas' chin," and the passage in Nash's introduction, p. 5, about mechanical mates, servile imitators of vain- loo LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. glorious tragedians, who think themselves '' more than initiated in poet's immortality if they but once get Boreas by the beard," with the words of the play itself : '' whiter than icy hair that grows on Boreas' chin." Mr. Simpson was, however, entirely wrong in identifying Doron with Shakespeare, and did not notice that Doron's entire speech parodies one of Menaphon's in p. 31, just as The Taming of a Shrew parodies Marlowe's plays, or " the me- chanical mates " alluded to by Nash imitate the " idiot art-masters " in the " swelhng bombast of a bragging blank verse," or the " spacious volu- bility of a drumming decasyllabon." The name Menaphon is taken from Marlowe's Tamberlaine. In these passages Greene and Nash satirise Kyd, then writing for Pembroke's company. In another para- graph, p. 9, Nash speaks of "a sort of shifting companions" that "leave the trade of Noverint whereto they were born," who get their aphorisms from translations of Seneca and can " afford you whole Hamlets of tragical speeches." This passage is famihar to all students of Shakespeare ; and yet no one has, I think, pointed out that Nash identi- fies these " famished followers " of Seneca with the " Kidde in iEsop, who, enamoured with the Fox's newfangles, forsook all hopes of life to leap into a new occupation." This pun in a tractate contain- ANNALS. 1 01 ing similar allusions to the names Greene, Lyly, and Merlin is equivalent to a direct attribution of the authorship oi Hamlet diS produced in 1589 to Kyd, and is also a refutation of those who have seen in the whole passage an allusion to Shakespeare. Very shortly after Greene's Menaphon Nash issued his Anatomy of Absurdities y which had been entered on the Stationers' Registers 19th Septem- ber 1588, and which contains much of the same satirical matter as his address in Menaphon. We have now to pass from the private quarrel of Greene and Nash, as representing the Queen's men at the Theater, with Marlowe and Kyd, the writers for Pembroke's company, to a much more important controversy in which many of the same dramatists were concerned. Between October 1588 and October 1589 the Martinists pubhshed their Puritan controversial tracts ; in opposition to them various writings had appeared, whose authors were Cooper, formerly schoolmaster, afterwards Bishop; Lyly the Euphuist; Nash the satirist; and Elderton *' the bibbing fool " ballad-maker. They had also been ridiculed on the stage, in April 1589, at the Theater, most likely by Greene ; at the Paul's school probably by Lyly ; and either in ballad or interlude by Antony Munday, even at that early date a dramatic writer. As the anti-Martinist plays were I02 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. on the side of the clergy and of secular authority they were not interfered with. But in November 1589, in consequence of certain players in London handling "matters of Divinity and State without judgment or decorum" — in other words, having the impertinence to suppose that there could be two sides to a question, Mr. Tylney, the Master of the Revels, suddenly becomes awake to the danger of allowing such discussions on public stages, and writes to Lord Burleigh that he "utterly mislikes all plays within the city." Lord Burleigh sends a letter to the Lord Mayor to " stay " them. The Theater and Curtain, where the Queen's men and Pembroke's were playing, were without the city, so that the anti-Martinist plays were not interfered with ; the Paul's boys were for the nonce not regarded as a company of players : so that the Mayor could only " hear of " the Admiral's men, who on admonish- ment dutifully forbore playing, and Lord Strange's, who departed contemptuously, "went to the Cross- Keys and played that afternoon to the great offence of the better sort, that knew they were prohibited." The Mayor then " committed two of the players to one of the compters." These players, however, gained their end, for all plays on either side of the controversy were forthwith suppressed, and commissioners were appointed to ANNALS. 103 examine and licence all plays thenceforth *' in and about " the city played by any players " whose servants soever they be." It is pleasing to find Shakespeare's company acting in so spirited a manner in defence of free thought and free speech : it would be more pleasing to be able to identity him personally as the chief leader in movement. And this I believe he was. The play of Love's Labours Lost, in spite of great alteration in 1597, is undoubtedly in the main the earliest example left us of Shakespeare's work : and the characters in the underplot agree so singularly even in the play as we have it with the anti- Martinist writers in their personal peculiarities that I have little doubt that this play was the one performed in November 1589. If the absence of matter of State be objected, I reply that it would be easy for malice to represent the loss of Love's labour in the main plot as a satire on the love's labour in vain of Alengon for Elizabeth. We must also remember that it is most likely that for some years at the beginning of his career Shakespeare wrote in conjunction with other men, and that in those plays that were revived by him at a later date their work was replaced by his own. In the case of the present play, as the revision was for a Court performance, we may be sure that e T^ OF THE ' r ^ I TTNTVF.RRTTV 1 104 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. great care would be taken to expunge all offensive matter : the only ground for surprise is that enough indications remain to enable us to identify the characters at all. 1590. Lovers Labouf^s Lost would no doubt be closely followed by Lovers Labour^s Won, which play I for other reasons attribute to this year. We must now again refer to Greene. His Farewell to Folly had been entered on the Stationers' Registers, i ith June 1587, but was not published till after his Mourning Garment, the entry of which dates 2d November 1590. In the introduction, which was certainly written at the time of publica- tion, although the body of the work had been lying by for some three years and more, Greene dis- tinctly alludes to Fair Em and accuses its author of ** simple abusing of Scripture," because " two lovers on the stage arguing one another of unkind- ness, his mistress runs over him with this canonical sentence * a man's conscience is a thousand wit- nesses ' ; and her knight again excuseth himself with that saying of the Apostle, ' Love covereth the multitude of sins.' " The exact words in the play are " Love that covers multitude of sins " and ^Hhy conscience is a thousand witnesses." Greene, ANNALS. los says Mr. R. Simpson, who first drew attention to this allusion to Fair Em in a paper unfortunately spoiled by an absurd attempt to identify Mullidor,* of *^ great head and little wit/' with Shakespeare, has parallel plots to those of Fair Em in his Tttlly's Love (1589) and Never Too Late (before 2d November 1590). To me the connexion seems closer between this satire, by Greene the profligate parson, based on Scriptural grounds, of a play written for Lord Strange's company, and the perse- cution they had just endured for venturing to present a play in favour of the Martinists. And as if to emphasise his intention in this direction, Greene says in his Dedication of his tract, '^ I cannot Martinize^ That Fair Em was the pro- duction of R. Wilson will I think be evident to those who will read it with careful remembrance. The Comedy of Errors was also probably acted this year in its original form. * A dor, dome, or drone is the lazy male bee that makes no honey : hence Doron, the dome (pronounce dor'un). There was a myth that dors or drones were produced by mules, hence Muli-dor (see Minshew drone). But a drone is also the drone of a bagpipe, or the bagpipe itself, which was , called chevrau (see Cotgrave, chevrau) or cheveril : and chevrau is Kyd. It is evident from Greene's tracts that Doron was meant for the writer of The Taming of a Shrew, and Mulidor for the same author — there cannot be a doubt of the identity of the characters. Nash's address identifies 7^he Taming of a Shrew writer with Kyd. io6 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. 1591- In this year were most likely produced two plays, not in the shape in which they have come down to us, but as originally written by Shakespeare and some coadjutor, viz., The Two Gentlemen of Verona and Romeo and Juliet, The question of the dates of these and all other plays of Shakespeare will be separately argued further on. It may be just worth while to note that the " pleasant Willy " of Spenser, who has been so carelessly identified with Shake- speare, with Kemp, and with Tarleton (!) is certainly Lyly. The line ^' doth rather choose to sit in idle cell " (Tears of the Muses) identifies him with '' slumbering Euphues in his cell at Silexedra " (Menaphofi). Compare " Euphues' golden legacy found after his death in his cell at Silexedra " (title of Lodge's Rosalynde). 1591-^2. In the Christmas Records of this year, the Queen's company made their final appearance at Court on December 26th. Lord Strange's men performed at Whitehall on December 27th, 28th, January ist, 9th, February 6th, 8th. The import of this fact has not been fully appreciated. The ANNALS. to7 ' exceptionally large number of performances of Lord Strange's men show a singular amount of Court favour, and go far to prove that Elizabeth did not sanction their persecution at the hands of Burleigh two years before. They henceforth, under various changes of name and constitution, until the closing of the theatres in 1642, retain the chief position in the performances at Court. This date, 1592, is in the history of this company of players, and therefore in that of Shakespeare, their chief poet and one of their best actors, of the very greatest importance. The old plays of King Johrij on which Shake- speare's was founded, were pubHshed this year, as having been acted by the Queen's company — an additional indication of an important change in their internal constitution. 1592. This year was scarcely less eventful than the preceding for the company to which Shakespeare belonged. On 19th February Henslowe opened the Rose theatre on Bankside for performances by Lord Strange's men under the management of the celebrated actor, Edward Alley n. Whether (and if at all, for how long) Alleyn had been io8 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. previously connected with the company, we are not directly informed ; but as he gave up playing for Worcester's men, c. January 1588-9, the exact time when the players of the late Earl of Leicester found a new patron in Lord Strange, that is the probable date of his joining them. This posses- sion of a settled place for performance gave his company additional influence and status. At first they played old plays, among which may be men- tioned Yiyd!sJeronymo and Spanish Tragedy, Greene's Orlando and Friar Bacon, Greene and Lodge's Looking-glass, Marlowe's Jew of Malta, and Peele's Battle of Alcazar. This last-named play, may, like Greene's Orlando, have been originally sold to the Queen's men, and to the Admiral's afterwards ; but whether this be so or not, we have the singular fact to explain that four plays, three by Greene and one by Marlowe, all belonging to the Queen's men, are now found in action by Lord Strange's. Combining this with their sudden disappearance from the Court Revels, it would seem that some grave displeasure had been excited against them, and that they had become disorganised. In fact, although they, or a part of them, lingered on in some vague connec- sion with Sussex' players, they now practically disappear from theatrical history. Of new plays Lord Strange's men produced on March 3d, Henry ANNALS. 109 VL, which is by the reference to it in Nash's Pt'ers Penniless (entered 8th August 1592) identified with the play now known as The First Part of Henry VI . It was acted fourteen times to crowded houses (Nash says to 10,000 spectators), and was the success of the season. I have no doubt that this play was written by Marlowe, with the aid of Peele, Lodge, and Greene, before 1590, and that the episode of Talbot's death added in 1592 is from the hand of Shakespeare himself. In this last opinion it is especially pleasing to me to find myself supported by the critical judgment of Mr. Swinburne. On nth April the play of Titus and Vespasian was first acted. Had it not been for the existence of a German version (given in full in Cohn's Shakespeare in Germany) we should not have been aware that this play was identical in story with that known as Titus Andronicus. It is unfortunately lost — a loss the more to be regretted since it has led to the supposition of the extant play having proceeded from the hand of Shake- speare. On lOth June A Knack to Know a Knave was performed for the first time. Mr. R. Simpson without the slightest ground conjectured that this was the play that Greene says he '^ lastly writ " with ^' young Juvenal." The most successful new plays in this season were Henry VI. and Titus and no LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. Vespasian (performed seven times in two months) ; of old plays the Spanish Tragedy (performed thirteen times), The Battle of Alcazar (eleven performances), and The Jew of Malta (ten performances). On June 22 the last performance took place before the closing of the theatres on account of the plague. On August 8 Piers Penniless was entered S. R., which contains Nash's reference to / Henry VI. On September 3 Greene died. On September 20 his Groatsworth of Wit was entered in the Stationers' Registers. This pamphlet was edited by Chettle, and contains the often quoted address to Marlowe, '^ young Juvenal," and Peele. In the portion where Greene speaks to all three of them, he says : " Trust them not, for there is an upstart crow, beautified with our feathers, that, with his Tiget^s heart wrapt in a player^s hide, supposes he is as well able to bombast out a blank verse as the best of you, and being an absolute Johannes F^totum, is in his own conceit the only shake-scene in our country." Mr. R. Simpson showed that " beautified with our feathers " meant acting plays written by us, but '^ bombast out a blank verse " undoubtedly refers to Shakespeare as a writer also. The line *' O tiger's heart wrapt in a woman's hide " occurs in Richard Duke of York (commonly but ANNALS. Ill injudiciously referred to as The True Tragedy), a play written for Pembroke's men, probably in 1590, on which J Henry VI. was founded. It is almost certainly by Marlowe, the best of the three whom Greene addresses. In December Chettle issued his Kindhearfs Dream, in which he apologises for the offence given to Marlowe in the Groatsworth of Wit, *' because myself have seen his demeanour no less civil than he excellent in the quality he pro- fesses ; besides divers of worship have reported his uprightness of dealing, which argues his honesty, and his facetious grace in writing, which approves his art." To Peele he makes no apology, nor indeed was any required. Shakespeare was not one of those who took offence ; they are expressly stated to have been two of the three authors addressed by Greene, the third (Lodge) not being in England. There were three plays performed at Hampton Court this Christmas, on December 26, 31, January I, by Lord Strange's men, in spite of the plague. I think the latter part of 1592 the most Hkely time for the writing of some scenes in AWs Well that Ends Well and Twelfth Night that show marks of early date. 112 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. 1593- On January 5 Lord Strange's company, who had reopened at the Rose, 29th December 1592, pro- duced a new play called The Jealous Comedy ; this I take to have been The Merry Wives of Windsor in its earliest form. On January 30 they produced Marlowe's Guise or Massacre of Paris, which has reached us in an unusually mutilated condition. On February i they performed for the last time this year in Southwark ; the Rose as well as other theatres being closed because of the plague. On April 18 Venus and Adonis was entered by Richard Field for publication. Shakespeare's choice of a pubhsher was no doubt influenced by private connection. R. Field was a son of Henry Field, tanner, of Stratford-on-Avon, who died in 1592. The inventory of his goods attached to his will had been taken by Shakespeare's father on 2 1st August in that year. Venus and Adonis was licensed by the Archbishop of Canterbury (Whitgift) (at whose palace near Croydon Nash's play. Summer's Last Will, was performed in the autumn of 1592), and was dedicated to Henry Wriothesley, Earl of Southampton. Shakespeare calls it " The first heir of my invention," which may mean his first published ANNALS. 113 work ; but more probably means the first produc- tion in which he was sole author, his previous plays having been written in conjunction with others ; and he vows *' to take advantage of all idle hours till I have honoured you with some graver labour." He had probably then planned if not begun his Rape of Lucrece. On May 6 a precept was issued by the Lords of the Privy Council authorising Lord Strange's players, " Edward Allen, William Kempe, Thomas Pope, John Heminges, Augustine Philipes, and George Brian" to play " where the infection is not, so it be not within seven miles of London or of the Court, that they may be in the better readiness hereafter for her Majesty's service." This list of names is by no means a complete one of the company of players ; but probably does consist of all the shareholders therein. Shakespeare was not a shareholder yet. Alleyn is described as servant to the Admiral as well as to Lord Strange. Accordingly they travelled and acted in the country — in July at Bristol, after- wards at Shrewsbury. Meanwhile on June i Mar- lowe was killed, leaving unpublished his poem. Hero and Leander, his play Dido, and in my opinion other plays ; of which more hereafter. On 25th September Henry Earl of Derby died, and Ferdinand Lord Strange succeeded to his 114 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. honours. His company of players are consequently sometimes called the Earl of Derby's for the next six months. There were no performances at Court at Christmas on account of the plague. 1594- On 23d January Titus Andronicus was acted as a new play by Sussex' men at the Rose. This company gave up playing there on 6th February. On 26th February the Andronicus play was entered on S. R. Langbaine, who professes to have seen this edition, says it was acted by the players of " Pembroke, Derby, and Essex." Essex is clearly a mistake for Sussex, for in the 1600 edition the companies are given as '* Sussex, Pembroke, and Derby." Halliwell's careless statement that Lord Strange's players transferred their services to Lord Hunsdon in 1594, has led me and others into grave difficulty on this matter. The fact is that Lord Derby's players became servants to the Chamberlain between i6th April, when Lord Derby died, and 3d June, when they played at Newington Butts under the latter appellation. There was strictly no Lord Strange's company after 25th September 1593, and no other Derby's company till 1599. The old name Strange, however, does sometimes occur instead of ANNALS. T15 Derby. Hence it seemed that the transfer to Derby's company must have taken place in 1600. Indeed so Httle was the fact known even in 1600, that Shakespeare's company enjoyed the title of Derby's men for six months, that although that name is given on the first page, on the title the same men reappear as the Lord Chamberlain's. Why Pembroke's men should have acquired the play on 6th February, and possibly parted with it by the 26th, does not appear, nor is there any parallel instance known : there must have been some great changes in their constitution at this time. But in any case Shakespeare did not write the play ; Mr. Halliwell's theory that he left Lord Strange's men, who in 1593 enjoyed the highest position of any then existing, and after having been a member succes- sively of two of the obscurest companies, returned to his former position within a few months, is utterly untenable. There is no vestige of evidence that Shakespeare ever wrote for any company but one. On 1 2th March York and Lancaster {2 Henry VI.) was entered on S. R. From 1st to 8th April Sussex' men and the Queen's acted at the Rose, among other plays, the old Letr (April 8), on which Shakespeare's Lear was founded. Both these companies henceforth vanish from stage history. xi6 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. On April i6 Lord Derby died. On May 2 The Taming of a Shrew was entered on S. R. On May 9 The Rape of Lucrece was entered. The difference in tone between the dedication of this poem to Lord Southampton and that of Venus and Adonis distinctly points to a personal intercourse having taken place in the interval. Hence the date of Shakespeare's first interview with his patron may be assigned as between April 1593 and May 1594. On May 14 The Famous Victories of Henry V. and Leir were entered on S. R. On May 14 also the Admiral's company, of which nothing is heard since 1591, began to act at the Rose, having acted at Newington for three days only. Alleyn, Henslow's son-in-law, had left the management of Shakespeare's company on the death of Lord Derby, and now joined the Admiral's men. Between * June 3 and June 13 the Chamberlain's men played at Newington Butts alternately with the Admiral's : among the Chamberlain's plays we notice on June 3, 10, Hester and Ahasuerus, which exists in a German version of which a translation ought to be pubHshed ; June 5, 12, Andronicus ; * These dates are so given by Henslow : they should be June 5 and June 1 5. ANNALS. 117 June g, Hamlet; June 11, The Taming of a Shrew, The intermediate days were occupied by the Admiral's men: who on the 15th [17th] went to the Rose, and the Chamberlain's men no doubt to the Theater, the Burbadges' own house. The Chamberlain's company at this date included W. Shakespeare, R. Burbadge, J. Hemings, A. PhilHps, W. Kempe, T. Pope, G. Bryan, all of whom, with the possible exception of Burbadge, had been members of Lord Strange's company ; together with H. Condell, W. Sly, R. Cowley, N. Tooley, J. Duke, R. Pallant, and T. Goodall, who had previously been in all probability members of the Queen's company. C. Beeston must have joined them soon afterwards. The names of Richard Hoope, William Ferney, William Black- way, and Ralph Raye occur in Henslow's Diary as Chamberlain's men c. January 1595. The Queen's men came in on the reconstitution of that company in 1591— 2. See on this matter further on under the head of The Seven Deadly Sins. On June 19 the old play of Richard III. (with Shore's wife in it) was entered on S. R., a pretty sure indication, which tallies with other external evidence, that the play attributed to Shakespeare was produced about this time. No one can read the four plays composing the Henry 6th series without ii8 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. feeling that, however various their authorship, they form a connected whole in general plan. Margaret is the central figure, who hovers like a Greek Chorus over the terrible Destiny that involves King and people in its meshes. But Margaret is not Shakespeare's creation ; she is Marlowe's. Shakespeare had no share in the plays on the contention of York and Lancaster, and but a slight one in / Henry VL Marlowe had a chief hand in I Henry VL and York and Lancaster; probably wrote the whole of Richard Duke of York, and laid, in my opinion, the foundation and erected part of the building of Richard ILL. At his death he seems to have left unacted or unpublished his poem of Hero and Leander^ finished afterwards by Chapman ; Dido^ partly by Nash, and produced (when ?) by the Chapel children ; Andronicus acted (under Peele's auspices ?) by the Sussex men, and Richard LLL., completed by Shakespeare, and acted by the Chamberlain's company as we have it in the Quarto. All these plays were produced or pubHshed in 1594. About the same time an earlier play of Marlowe's, originally acted c. 1589, was altered and revised by Shakespeare. The date and authorship of the Shakespearian part of Edward HL, viz., from " Enter King Edward " in the last scene of act i. to the end of act ii., are proved ANNALS. 119 by the allusion to the poem of Lucrece; the repeti- tion of lines from the Sonnets : " Their scarlet ornaments," *^ Lilies that foster smell far worse than weeds," and many smaller coincidences with undoubted Shakespearian plays : while the original date and authorship of the play as a whole will appear from the following quotations. In the Address prefixed to Greene's Menaphon, in a passage in which Nash has been satirising Kyd and another as void of scholarship and unable to read Seneca in the original, he suddenly attacks Marlowe, whom he has previously held up as the object of their imitation, and asks what can they have of him ? in Nash's own words : " What can be hoped of those that thrust Elysium into Hell, and have not learned, so long as they have lived in the spheres, the just measure of the Horizon without an hexameter ? " Marlowe in Faustus * has ^' con- found Hell in Elysium," and, in Edward III, horizon is pronounced horizon. This, however, might occur in other plays ; but in Greene's Never Too Late we find Tully addressing the player Roscius, who certainly represents R. Wilson, in these words : " Why, Roscius, are thou proud with ^sop's crow, * Simpson. But rather in i Tambiirlane v. 2 : " Hell and Elysium swarm with ghosts of men," and similarly a few lines before " where shaking "hosts," &c. I20 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE, being pranked with the glory of others' feathers ? Of thyself thou canst say nothing : and if the Cobbler hath taught thee to say Ave Ccesar, disdain not thy tutor because thou pratest in a King's chamber." Unless another play can be produced with '' Ave Caesar " in it, this must be held to allude to Edward III., in which play Wilson must have acted the Prince of Wales (act i. i. 164). The ^' cobbler " alludes to Marlowe as a shoemaker's son. On July 20, Locrine, an old play written, says Mr. Simpson, by G. Tylney in 1586, but in which Peele had certainly a principal hand, was entered on S. R. It was issued as " newly set forth, overseen and corrected by W. S." I see no reason to be- lieve that this was Shakespeare. Of course he had no hand in writing the play ; and in any case Peele did not probably sanction the publication. To this year we must assign the production of the earliest of Shakespeare's Sonnets. That these (or rather that portion of them which are con- tinuous, 1-126) were addressed to Lord South- ampton was proved by Drake. The identity of language between the Dedication of Lucrece and Sonnet 26, the exact agreement of them with all we know of the careers of Shakespeare and his patron during the next four years, and the utter absence ANNALS. 121 of evidence of his connection with any other patron, are conclusive on that point. They begin (i— 17) with entreaties to marry, which date about 6th October 1594, when Southampton attained his majority, and before he had met EHzabeth Vernon, and end (117) in a time when *^ peace proclaiming olives of endless age," after the treaty of Vervins, 2d May 1598: and before the Earl's marriage at the end of that year. They involve a story of some frail lady who had transferred her favours to the young lord from the older player (40-42). Far too much has been written on this matter from a moral point of view. The fact remains, and all we can say is : Remember these Sonnets were written " among private friends," and not for publication. The lady has not hitherto been iden- tified, but is, I think, identifiable. On September 3d was entered on S. R., Wyllobte his Avisa. Dr. Ingleby has shown in his Shakespeare Allusion-books that the W. S. in this poem is William Shakespeare, and that Hadrian Dorrell, the reputed editor, is a fictitious character. He has, however, missed the key to this anonymity ; viz., that the book was known to be a personal satirical libel. P[eter] C[olse], according to the author of Avisa, " mis- construed " the poem ; and so necessitated the further figment in the 1605 edition that the 122 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. supposed author, A. Willobie, was dead ; in this edition the mythical H. D. says : " If you ask me for the persons, I am altogether ignorant of them, and have set them down only as 1 find them named or disciphered in my author. For the truth of this action, if you enquire, I will more fully dehver my opinion hereafter." But independently of this evidence from the book itself we find in S. R. (Arber, iii. 6yS) that when the works of Marston, Davies, &c., were burnt in the Hall, 4th June 1599, other books were '^ stayed ; " viz., Caltha Poetarum, Hall's Satires, and " Willobie's Adviso to be called in." This marks the book as of the same character as its companions ; viz., libellous, calumnious, personally abusive. The characters in the poems were evidently representations of real living persons. The heroine of the poem is Avisa, or AvTsa (sometimes written A vis A), that is, Avice or Avice A. This name was not uncommon (see Camden's Remaines, p. 93). She lived in the west of England, *' where Austin pitched his monkish tent," in a house " where hangs the badge of England's saint." The place is more fully described thus : — " At east of this a castle stands By ancient shepherds built of old, ANNALS. 123 And lately was in shepherds' hands, Though now by brothers bought and sold : At west side springs a crystal well : There doth this chaste Avisa dwell." And again :■ — "In sea-bred soil on Tempe downs, Whose silver spring from Neptune's well With mirth salutes the neighbouring towns." These descriptions suit the vale of Evesham, the castle being that of Bengworth and the well that of Abberton. Austin's oak was traditionally placed in this part by some, though others put it in Gloucestershire. Avisa's parents are mentioned as ^'of meanest trade." They were, I take it, inn- keepers, and the inn had the sign of St. George. The other characters are D. B., a Frenchman, with motto Dudum Beatus; Didymus H., an Anglo- German, with motto Dum Habiii; H. W., Italo His- palensiSf and Wplliam] S[hakespeare]. The story is that Avisa, the chaste, who " makes up the mess " of four with Lucrece, Susanna, and Penelope, has been married at twenty, tempted by a Noble- man, a Cavaliero, a Frenchman, an Anglo-German, &c., without result, and is consequently England's rara avis, who matches those of Greece, Palestine, and Rome. The mottoes of the foreigners, however. 124 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. point to a different conclusion, and so does this passage : " If any one, therefore, by this should take occasion to surmise that the author meant to note any woman, whose name sounds something like that name, it is too childish and too absurd, and not beseeming any deep judgment, considering there are many things which cannot be applied to any woman^ In plain language, Mr. Dorrell believes no woman to be chaste. H. W., at first sight of Avisa, is infected with a fantastical fit, and bewrays his disease to his familiar friend, W. S., who, not long before, had tried the courtesy of the like pas- sion, and was now newly recovered [in 1594]. Having been laughed at himself he determined to see whether it would sort to a happier end for the new actor than it did for the old player. Doubtless W. S. is Shakespeare, and Avisa is represented ironically as a trader who had made a Frenchman long happy (dudum beatus), been possessed by an Anglo-German (dum habui), had then passed to Shakespeare, and finally to H. W. Such was the slanderous story published in 1594; how far true, whether at all true, I care not to inquire ; but that it is the same story as that of the Sonnets, that H. W. is Henry Wriothesley, and that the black woman of the Sonnets is identical with Avisa, I regard as indubitable. Of course the Thomas ANNALS. 125 Willoby, Frater Henrici Willoughby nuper defunctiy of the 1605 edition is a mere device to blind the licensers for the press. Similar devices have often been used, but I know of none so impudently charming as the " author's conclusion " as to the man who is nuper dcfunctus. '' H. W. was now again stricken so dead that he hath not yet any further essayed, nor I think ever will, and whether he be alive or dead I know not, and therefore I leave him." On December 26th and 28th the Chamberlain's servants performed before the Queen at Greenwich, apparently in the daytime. Kempe, Shakespeare, and Burbadge were paid for these performances on the following March. It is singular that the per- formance of ^' A comedy of Errors like unto Plautus his Mencechmi" should have also been performed apparently by the same company at Gray's Inn, also on December 26th. This seems to be the first mention of Shakespeare's play, the true title of which is simply Errors : but whether it was written in 1590 or 1593-4, there is no evidence that is absolutely decisive. The allusion to France fight- ing against her heir, v. ii. 2. 125, would be equally applicable at any date from July 1589, when Henri III. was killed, to February 1594, when Henri IV. was consecrated. 126 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. 1595. That the date of Midsummer Nighfs Dream should be fixed in the winter of 1594—5 was long since seen by Malone, the allusions to the remarkable weather of 1594 being too marked to be put aside contemptuously. It has also been attempted to assign other dates on account oT the play's being manifestly written for some marriage solemnity. It is not needful to alter the date for that reason. Either the marriage of W. Stanley, Earl of Derby, at Greenwich, on 24th January, 1594-5, or that of Lord Russel, Earl of Bedford, to Lucy Harrington (before 5 th Februar}^, S. R.), would suit very well in point of time. The former is the more probable ; because it took place at Greenwich, where we know the Chamberlain's men to have performed in the previous month, and be- cause these actors had mostly been servants to the Earl of Derby's brother in the early part of the previous year. There is little, if any doubt, that Shakespeare produced Richard II. and The Two Gentlemen of Verona, as we now have it, in this year. A larum for London, or The Siege of Antwerp, by (?) Lodge, was acted about this time. The play of Richard Duke of York was printed » ANNALS. 127 in 1595 ; and on 1st December Edward III. was entered on S. R. The performances of the Chamberlain's men, 1594-5, at Court, were on December 26, 27, 28; January 5 ; February 22. Payment was made to Hemings and Bryan. 1596. Early in this year the play of Sir T. More was produced by the Chamberlain's company. The name of T. Goodale, who was one of their actors, occurs in the MS. It appears from the notes of E. Tylney, then Master of the Revels, that much revision had to be made in its form in consequence of its reproducing, under a thin disguise, a narrative of the Apprentice Riots of June 1595. The im- prisonment of the Earl of Hertford in October of the same year was too closely paralleled by that of Sir T. More in the play to be agreeable to the Government. Another point objected to was satirical allusion to Frenchmen. The date hitherto assigned to this play is '^ 1590 or earher " (Dyce), which is palpably wrong. Soon after Shakespeare's King John was acted. It contains, in my opinion, an allusion to the expedition to Cadiz in June (i. 2. 66—75). 128 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. On July 23d Henry Carey died, and the " Chamberlain's players " became the men of his son, George Carey L. Hunsdon. In the same month, or earlier, Romeo and Juliet was revived in a greatly altered and improved form. All work by the second hand was cut out and replaced by Shakespeare's own writing. It was not, however, acted at this date at the Curtain, but at the Theater. Lodge's allusion in his Wifs Misery y 1596, to Hamlet^ as acted in that house, is inconsistent with any other supposition. On August 5 a ballad on Romeo and Juliet was entered on S. R. This is taken by Mr. Halliwell as evidence that the play was then on the stage. On August 27 ballads are also mentioned on Macdobeth and The Taming of a Shrew. That on Macbeth could not have been on the play as we now have it, but that a play on this subject, perhaps an earlier form of the extant one, was then acted, is very probable. On August 1 1 Hamnet Shakespeare was buried at Stratford : his father undoubtedly was present. This is the first visit to Stratford on his part since 1587 so far as any evidence exists. Shakespeare returned to his lodgings ^' near the Bear Garden " in Southwark (AUeyn MS. teste Malone) before October 20, where a draft of a ANNAI^. 129 grant of arms was made to John Shakespeare, no doubt at his son's expense. In November, a petition was presented by the inhabitants of Blackfriars against the transformation into a theatre of a large house bought by J. Bur- badge on the preceding February 4. The petition was ineffectual. Shakespeare's play The Merchant of Venice^ some- times called The Jew of Venice, is generally assigned to this year. I prefer 1597. On December 29, Henry Shakespeare, the poet's uncle, was buried at Snitterfield ; and his wife Margaret on 9th February 1596—7. The Court performances of Lord Hunsdon's men at Whitehall were six in number, two at Christmas, and others on 1st, 5th January; 6th, 8th February 1596-7. 1597. Before March 5 a surreptitious edition of Romeo and Juliet was published, but not entered on S. R. This consists of an imperfect and abridged copy of the revised play, with lacunae filled up by portions of the original version of 1591. See hereafter in Section IV. In Easter term, Shakespeare purchased New Place, a mansion and grounds in Stratford, for ;£"6o. I 130 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. This was freehold, and henceforth his designation is, William Shakespeare of New Place, Stratford, Gentleman. From this time, male heirs failing, his ambition seems to be to found a family in one of the female branches ; and Stratford is to be regarded as his residence. Soon after 5th March, Lord Hunsdon was ap- pointed Chamberlain vice W. Brooke, Lord Cobham, deceased, and Lord Hunsdon's men again became the Lord Chamberlain's. During this year and the next Shakespeare undoubtedly produced / and 2 Henry IV. The name given to the " fat knight " was originally Sir John Oldcastle. This offended the Cobham family, who were lineally descended from the great Sir John Oldcastle, and through their influence the Queen ordered the name to be altered. The new name was that of FalstafF, unquestionably identical with the Fastolfe of history. Shakespeare had unwittingly adopted the name Oldcastle from the old play of The Famous Victories of King Henry V. Mr. Halliwell has pointed out that there must have been another play in which a Sir John Oldcastle was represented : he quotes Hey for Honesty ^ '' The rich rubies and incomparable carbuncles of Sir John Oldcastle's nose ; " and Howell's Letters, ii. 71, "Ale is thought to be much adulterated, and nothing so ANNALS. 131 good as Sir John Oldcastle and Smug the Smith was used to drink." I venture to add that this last quotation fixes the other play. It was Dray- ton's Merry Devil of Edmonton^ in which Sir John the priest of Enfield drinks ale with Smug the Smith, and " carries fire in his face eternally." This play was probably produced between i Henry IV. and 2 Henry IV. The words " tickle your catas- trophe " in the latter are more likely to be an allusion to the '' gag " in the Merry Devil than con- versely ; similar ridicule of this phrase is introduced in Sir Giles Goosecapj which is certainly of later date. It seems strange that Sir John Oldcastle should have been used as the name of a priest ; but the play has been so greatly abridged (all the part of the story in which Smug replaces St. George as the sign of the inn, for instance, having been cut out) that it would be mere guess-work to try to restore its original form, and without such restoration we cannot judge of the reasons for so singular an impersonation. Of course it was attempted to remove all trace of Oldcastle's name ; but just as the prefix Old. to one of the speeches in Shakespeare's play bears evidence to Oldcastle having been his original fat knight, so it is pos- sible that in a hitherto unexplained passage there may be a trace of Oldcastle as Drayton's original 132 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. ale-drinking priest. In scene 9 the words italicised in " My old Jenerts bank my horse, my castle^' look very like a corruption of a stage direction written in margin of a proof thus — Old- J. enters casde — he is on the scene directly after, and his entrance is nowhere marked. T. Lodge, as well as Drayton, was writing about this date for the Chamberlain's men. On August 29 Richard 11. was entered on S. R., and on October 20 Richard III. These were evidently printed from authentic copies, duly authorised for publication. About July 1597 the Theater, with regard to extension of the lease of which James Burbadge had been negotiating up to his death in the spring of that year, was finally closed as a place oi per- formance. In October the Chamberlain's men no doubt began to act at the Curtain, which Pembroke's men left at that date to join the Admiral's company at the Rose ; some of them, however, probably Cooke, Belt, Sinkler, and Holland, had already in 1594 joined the Chamberlain's, as we shall see. About this date Mr. Halliwell says " Shakespeare's company " were at Rye (in August), at Dover and ANNALS. 133 Bristol (in September), &c. Pembroke's company were at these places, but he has given no proof that the Chamberlain's were. The " Curtain-plau- dities '* of Marston's Scourge of Villany, entered S. R. 8th September 1598, would certainly seem to show that they acted at the Curtain in 1598. This does not, however, involve the inference that they acted there in 1596, at which time they no doubt performed at the Theater. About this same time the play of Wily Beguiled was acted, which contains distinct parodies of speeches by Shylock and old Capulet, as well as of other scenes in the Merchant of Venice, which must have preceded it. It has been alleged by Steevens and others that this play existed in 1596, but no proof has been given of this assertion. In November John Shakespeare filed a bill against Lambert for the recovery of the Asbies estate. There is no trace of his having proceeded further with this litigation. At Christmas the Chamberlain's men performed four plays at Whitehall, one of which was Lovers Labour's Lost. The corrections and augmentations of the play, as we have it, may be confidently ascribed to the preparation for this performance. 134 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. 1598. On January 24 Abraham Sturley wrote to Richard Quiney urging him to persuade Shake- speare to make a purchase at Shottery, on the ground that he would thus obtain friends and advancement, and at the same time benefit the Corporation. On February 25 / Henry IV. was entered on S. R., and on July 22 The Merchant of Venice, In this spring or in 1597 Much Ado about Nothing was probably produced. It was probably an alteration of Love's Labour's Won. In September Jonson joined the Chamberlain's men, and produced his Every Man in his Humour at the Curtain. This was the Quarto version with the Italian names. Aubrey has been subjected to much unfounded abuse for asserting that Jonson acted at the Curtain. The actors in this play were Shakespeare, Burbadge, PhilHps, Hemings, Condell, Pope, Sly, Beeston, Kemp, and Duke. Shakespeare, it will be noted, is first on the list. On September 7 Meres' Palladis Tamia was entered on S. R. Among the abundant and often- quoted praises of Shakespeare in this work the most important for biographical purposes are the enu- meration of his plays, the lists of tragic and comic ANNALS. 135 dramatists, and this passage, which I shall have to refer to hereafter. *' As the soul of Euphorbus was thought to live in Pythagoras, so the great witty soul of Ovid lives in mellifluous and honey- tongued Shakespeare. Witness his Venus and Adonis, his Lucrece, his sugared Sonnets among his private friends," &c. A careful comparison of the list of dramatists with that of known plays or titles of plays that have come down to us shows that the Palladis Tamia could not have been com- pleted for the press till June 1598, and an examina- tion of the list of Shakespeare's plays shows that it consists of those then in the repertoire of the Chamberlain's company, that is, of those either newly written or revived between June 1594 and June 1598. These plays are : Gentlemen of Verona; Errors ; Lovers Labouf^s Lost ; Loves Labour's Won; Midsummer- Night's Dream; Merchant of Venice — comedies. Richard XL ; Richard III. ; Henry IV. ; John; Titus Andronicus ; Romeo and Juliet — tra- gedies. It is clear that Richard III. and a play on Andronicus, which I believe to be the one we have, were attributed to Shakespeare at that time. On 25 th October Richard Quiney wrote from the Bell in Carter Lane to his " loving good friend and countryman Mr. William Shakespeare," who was, according to the subsidy roll discovered by Mr. J. 136 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. Hunter, then living in the parish of St. Helen's, Bishopsgate, asking for the loan of ;^30. On the same day he wrote to his brother-in-law Mr. Sturley at Stratford, that " our countryman Mr. W. Shakespeare would procure us money." The former letter was sent evidently by hand, an affir- mative answer obtained, and soon after instructions given by Shakespeare for the procuring the money. We could not otherwise account for the letter being preserved among the documents of the Corporation. The Famous Victories of Henry V. was reprinted in 1598 ; as we so often find to be the case with old plays on which other plays have been founded. The complaint about the name Oldcastle no doubt was a special motive for reproducing the old play in this instance. There were three plays performed at Court by Shakespeare's company in the Christmas festivities. 1599. In April a play of Troylus and Cressida, by Dekker and Chettle, was written ; no doubt an opposition play to some revival of Shakespeare's older one on the same subject. The Chamberlain's men acted A Warning for Fair Women about this time. This play appears to me to come from the hand of Lodge. ANNALS. 137 In this year The Passionate Pilgrim^ " by W. Shakespeare," was imprinted by Jaggard. It con- tains two of the Sonnets, two other Sonnets from Lovers Labour's Lost, and one other poem from the same play by Shakespeare. The remaining poems, as far as they are known, are by Barnefield and other inferior authors. There is not a vestige of reason for reprinting this book as Shakespeare's. In the spring Shakespeare's company left the Curtain and went to act at the Globe. This was a newly erected building on Bankside, made partly of the materials of the old Theater, which had been removed by Burbadge at the beginning of the year. One of the first plays performed in it was Jonson's Every Man out of his Humour, the chief actors in which were Burbadge, Hemings, Phillips, Condell, Sly, and Pope. Kempe, Beeston, Duke, and Pallant had left the company, and did not act at the Globe. But Shakespeare's name is also absent in this list, and this fact, coupled with that of the Hbellous nature of this '^ comical satire," and Jonson's leav- ing the Chamberlain's men immediately after it to continue his strictures on Dekker, &c., at Black- friars with the Children of the Chapel, makes it exceedingly probable that the disagreement which eventuated in the " purge " given by Shakespeare to Jonson mentioned in The Return to Parnassus 138 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. had already arisen. It would lead to too long a digression to do more than touch on this stage quarrel here. I can only say that it lasted till 1601 ; that Jonson and Chapman on the one side at Blackfriars, and Shakespeare, Marston, and Dekker on the other, at first at the Globe, Rose, and Paul's, afterwards at the Fortune, kept up one continual warfare for more than three years. Not one of their plays during this time is free from person- alities and satirical allusions ; nor, indeed, are most comedies of EHzabeth's time ; it is only because the allusions have grown obscure and uninteresting to us, that we fail to see that the Elizabethan comedy is eminently Aristophanic. It is not till the reign of James that we find the comedy of manners and intrigue at all generally developed. Another play produced after the opening of the Globe was Henry V., and soon after in this year As You Like It. Somewhere about this time an attempt was made to get a grant to ^' impale the arms of Shake- speare with those of Arden," ignotum cum ignotiore. The grant was not obtained. At this Christmas the Chamberlain's men gave three performances at Court, viz., on 26th December at Whitehall, on 5th January 1 599-1600 and on 4th February at Richmond. ANNALS. 139 1600. Shrovetide, February 4. The play performed at Court was probably The Merry Wives of Windsor. This play is assigned by tradition to a command of the Queen, who wished to see Falstaff represented in love, and is said to have been written in a fort- night. It was probably an adaptation of the old Jealous Comedy of 1592, and is more likely to have come after than before Henry V., in which Shake- speare had failed, according to his implied promise in the Epilogue to 2 Henry IV., to continue the story with Falstaff in it. It stands apart altogether from the historical series. March 6. The Chamberlain's men acted "Old- castle " before their patron. Lord Hunsdon, and foreign ambassadors at Somerset House. This could not have been Shakespeare's "Falstaff," for the obnoxious name of Oldcastle would certainly not have been revived before such an audience ; nor could it have been the Sir John Oldcastle, which belonged to another company ; it may have been The Merry Devil of Edmonton. About this time Shakespeare, always attentive to pecuniary matters, brought an action against one John Clayton for £y, and obtained a verdict. The August entries on S. R. are specially in- I40 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. teresting. On the 4th a memorandum (not in the regular course of entry) appears to the effect that As You Like It, Henry V., Every Man in his Humour, and Much Ado about Nothing, were " to be stayed." On the 14th, Every Man in his Humour was licensed ; on the 23d, Much Ado about Nothing, and along with it 2 Henry IV., '' with the humours of Sir John Falstaff. Written by Master Shake- speare." On the nth the first and second parts of the History of the Life of Sir John Oldcastle, Lord Cobham, " with his Martyrdom!^ had been licensed. The " staying " is generally supposed to have relation to surreptitious printing ; I think it more likely to have been caused by the supposed satiri- cal nature of the plays. As You Like It was not printed ; Henry V. was printed in an incomplete form * without license ; while the emphatic men- tion of Falstaff and the insertion of the author's name to 2 Henry IV., not customary at that date, show that the Oldcastle scandal had not yet died out. This is still further proved by the almost simultaneous entries of the two plays written October to December 1599 for the Admiral's men by Monday, Drayton, Wilson, and Hathaway, on Sir John Oldcastle. Only one has reached us, which is plainly satirical of Henry V. It was, however, jy^nry V. was transferred to T. Pavier on 14th Au<;ust. ANNALS. 141 in one of the editions printed in 1600 ascribed to William Shakespeare. Drayton, who was the chief author concerned in its production, had left the Chamberlain's men in 1597, and been writing for the Admiral's ever since. It is noticeable that after 1597 we find the favourable notices of Lodge and Shakespeare which had been inserted in pre- vious editions expunged from his writings, notably the lines on Lucrece in the legend of Matilda. Drayton had probably quarrelled with both his coadjutors. With the entry here on Oldcastle's " martyrdom " compare the Epilogue to 2 Henry IV. This was not the play acted before Hunsdon on March 6, which was probably The Merry Devil. On 8th October Midsummer-Night^ s Dream was entered on S. R. ; on 28 th October The Merchant of Venice. Curiously enough, two rival issues of each of these plays was made this year, although only one publisher made an entry in each case. On 22d July 1598, J. Roberts had entered The Merchant of Venice, but was refused permission to print unless he could get the Lord Chamberlain's license, who was the patron of the actors of that play. He apparently did not get it; but in 1600, when J. Heyes does get the license, he arranges with Heyes to print the book for him, but previ- ously prints a slightly differing copy on his own 142 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. account. He makes with Fisher, the publisher of the other play, a somewhat similar transaction. There were three Court performances this Christ- mas by the Chamberlain's men, December 26, January 5, February 24. The payment for these to Hemings and Cowley indicates that the latter was a shareholder in the Globe. 2 and 3 Henry VI. were probably revised and revived at the Globe about this time. 1 60 1. In this year Alts Well that Ends Well and Hamlet were produced. The form in which the latter appeared is matter of dispute ; but we may safely assert that it lay between the version of the first Quarto and that of the Folio ; the variation of the Quarto from this original form being caused by the surreptitious nature of that edition, and that of the Folio by a subsequent revision in 1603. The company of " Httle eyases " satirised in this play was not of the Paul's children, with whom the Chamberlain's men were on the most friendly terms, but of the Chapel children at the Blackfriars, who were then acting Jonson's " comical satires " against Dekker, Marston, and Shakespeare. Singularly enough, they were tenants of the Burbadges, who were also owners of the Globe. ANNALS. 143 In the same year 160 1, a poem by Shakespeare appeared along with others by Jonson, Marston, and Chapman in R. Chester's Lovers Martyr, or Rosalinds Complaint. This publication, could we ascertain its exact date, would show the time when the stage controversy ceased and these four writers could amicably appear together. Dekker, however, does not appear among them, and we cannot tell if his Satiromastix was acted with Shakespeare's approval or not. It was produced at the Globe by his com- pany as well as by the children of Paul's at some time between 22d May, up till which day Dekker was writing for the Admiral's men, and nth November, when it was entered on S. R. This bitter satire seems to have been the last open word in the controversy, but by no means the end of its history. The next fact we have to notice may perhaps explain why, just at this point of Shakespeare's career, we find in 1602 a cessation of production, accompanied by a change of manner in outward form and inward thought when writing was resumed in 1603. In March 1601, in the Essex trials, Meyrick was indicted " for having procured the outdated tragedy of Richard 11. to be publicly acted at his own charge for the entertainment of the con- spirators " (Camden). From Bacon's speech (State 144 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. Trials) it appears that Phillips was the manager who arranged this performance. This identifies the company as the Chamberlain's, and therefore the play as Shakespeare's. It may seem strange that a play, duly licensed and published in 1597, could give offence in 1601 ; but the published play did not contain the deposition scene, iv. i, the acted play of 1 60 1 certainly did. This point is again brought forward in Southampton's trial : he calmly asked the Attorney-General, " What he thought in his conscience they designed to do with the Queen ? " ^' The same," replied he, " that Henry of Lancaster did with Richard II." The examples of Richard IL and Edward II. were again quoted by the assistant judges against Southampton, while Essex in his defence urged the example of the Duke of Guise in his favour. From all which it is clear that the subjects chosen for historical plays by Marlowe and Shakespeare were unpopular at Court, but approved of by the Essex faction, and that at last the com- pany incurred the serious displeasure of the Queen. Accordingly, they did not perform at Court at Christmas 1601-2;* and we find them travelling in Scotland instead — L. Fletcher with his company of players being traceable at Aberdeen in October. * Mr. Halliwell {Outlines, p. 128, 2d edition) says they per- formed four plays at Whitehall, but quotes no authority. ANNALS. 145 Here the actors would hear of the Gowry conspiracy instead of Essex', of which we shall find the result hereafter. Before leaving London, however, or in the next year after their return, they acted The Life and Death of Lord Cromwell ^ Earl of Essex, a play in which the rise and fall of Robert Devereux, the late Earl, was pretty closely paralleled. This was entered on S. R., nth August 1602, "as lately acted." On September 8 John Shakespeare, the poet's father, was buried at Stratford. 1602. On 1 8th January The Merry Wives of Windsor was entered on S. R. : a surreptitious issue. On 2d February, Twelfth Night was performed at the Readers' Feast at the (?) Middle Temple, "much like The Comedy of Errors or the Menechmi in Plautus, but most like and near to that in Italian, called Inganni" (Manningham's Diary). On 19th April i and 2 Henry VI. (evidently the Quarto plays on which 2 and j Henry VL were founded) were assigned by Millington to Pavier, salvo jure cujuscumque, S. R. This entry is impor- tant. It shows that the remodelling of the old Quarto plays under the new name of Henry VI. instead of The Contention of York and Lancaster had taken place ; it indicates a doubt or fear as to K 146 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. whether the copyright might be disputed by some publisher, authorised by the Chamberlain's men to produce the amended version. In May, Shakespeare bought for ;^320, from the Combes, 107 acres of arable land in Old Stratford. The indenture was sealed and delivered in his absence to his brother Gilbert. On July 26 the surreptitious Hamlet was entered on S. R., and on August 1 1 The Life and Death of the Lord Cromwell. On 28th September, at a Court Baron of the Manor of Rowington, Walter Getley transferred to Shakespeare a cottage and garden in Chapel Lane, about a quarter of an acre with forty feet frontage, possession being reserved for the lady of the manor till suit and service had been personally done for the same. Two plays were performed by the Chamberlain's men at Court this Christmas, one at Whitehall 26th December, one at Richmond 2d February. 1603. February 7. Troylus and Cressida, as performed probably in 1602 by the Chamberlain's men, not the play by Dekker and Chettle, was entered on S. R. The Taming of the Shrew as we have it was probably produced in March. ANNALS. 147 March 24. The Queen died. On 19th May a license was granted to L. Fletcher, W. Shakespeare, R. Burbadge, A. Phillips, J. Hemings, H. Condell, W. Sly, R. Armin, R. Cowley, to perform stage plays ''within their now usual house called the Globe," or in any part of the kingdom. They are henceforth nominated the King's Players. The functions of Fletcher are not exactly known : he did not act, and was probably a sort of general manager; the other eight were probably shareholders, among whom it will be noted that Shakespeare and Burbadge stand first. In the list of actors in Jonson's SejanuSy Cowley and Armin are omitted, A. Cook and J. Lowin appearing instead. This play got Jonson into trouble. He was accused before the Council for " Popery and treason " in it. When he published it next year he no doubt omitted the most objection- able passages, and put forth an excuse that a second hand had good share in it. This was his usual way of getting out of a difficulty of this kind. Even as the play stands there is abundant room for malice to interpret the quarrel between Sejanus and Drusus as that between Essex and Blount ; and to see in Sejanus^ poisoning propensities allusions to the Earl of Leicester. Whalley's curious notion that Jonson in his argument alluded 148 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. to the Powder plot, ignores the fact that the play was entered on 2d November 1604 in S. R. It is Raleigh's plot that is intended. The London Prodigal, and Wilkins' Miseries of Enforced Marriage, were written and perhaps acted (at the Globe ?) this year. The edition of Hamlet entered in the preceding year was issued in the autumn. On December 2 the King's players performed at the Earl of Pembroke's at Wilton, and at Hamp- ton Court before the King on December 26, 27, 28, January I [? December 29] ; before the Prince, December 30, January i ; before the King at Whitehall, February 2, 18; nine plays in all. A much larger number of plays were acted at Christmas festivities at Court in James's reign than in Elizabeth's. Perhaps the Queen only cared for new plays. We know that James frequently ordered a second performance of any one that specially pleased him, and often had old plays revived. On 8th February 1604, there occurs an entry in the Revels accounts which explains the small number of public theatrical performances, and the cessation of work of the principal author for the King's men in 1603. To R. Burbadge was given ;^30, '* for the maintenance and relief of himself and ANNALS. 149 the rest of his company, being prohibited to present any plays publicly in or near London by reason of great peril that might grow through the extra- ordinary concourse and assembly of people to a new increase of the plague, till it shall please God to settle the city in a more perfect health." From July 1603 till March 1604 the theatres were probably closed. Hence my doubt as to whether The London Prodigal and The Miseries of Enforced Marriage were performed in London till 1604, The King's company were most likely travelling in the provinces till the winter ; but were disappointed at not being allowed to reopen at Christmas when the plague had abated. 1604. The King's men, like those of other companies, had an allowance for cloaks, &c., to appear at the entry of King James on 15 th March. The second Quarto of Hamlet was pubhshed in this year — ^^ Newly imprinted and enlarged to almost as much again as it was, according to the new and perfect copy." This version was probably that performed at Court in the Christmas festivities 1603—4. We cannot suppose that among the nine plays then exhibited Hamlet would not be included. Of course on such occasions plays were always more I50 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. or less rewritten. In this instance the remodeUing is twofold ; the Quarto version for the Court, 1603-4, the Folio for the public, of the same date. That the Folio does not merely reproduce the 1601 play, as it was acted in London, " in the Universities of Cambridge and Oxford" (perhaps in going to or returning from Scotland in 1601), " and elsewhere," is clear for many reasons, one of which concerns us here. In the well-known passage in ii. 2 relating to the Children's company, an ^'inhibition" and " innovation " are mentioned in the 1604 Quarto of which there is no note in that of 1603. The only time at which we know of any contemporary in- hibition and innovation was in, January- February 1604. The inhibition on account of the plague, which was going on till nearly 8th February, I have already noticed ; the innovation was either the political conspiracy of Raleigh or the attempt at reformation in religion by the Puritans. The Children of the Chapel, who under Evans, Burbadge's lessee, had satirised Shakespeare and other players in their performances at Blackfriars, were re- appointed at this time to act in that same theatre under E. Kirkham, A. Hawkins, T. Kendall, and R. Payne, with the new appellation of Children of the Revels. The date of the warrant is 30th January 1604. The King's men acted at Court ANNALS. 151 2d February, and if Hamlet was then performed the' passage in ii. 2 may have brought their grievance under the King's notice, and resulted in the gift of ;^30 by way of compensation. I do not insist on this, however, as it is omitted in the Quarto. No doubt they had expected to get rid of the chil- dren at Blackfriars at the end of seven years from the date of the original lease, 4th February 1596. At the end of another seven years they did so, but only by purchasing the remainder of the lease. In this summer Marston's Malcontent was ob- tained in some indirect manner from these Black- friars children, perhaps from one of the children actors who ^' left playing " at the time of the new license, and was played at the Globe, with an Induction by Webster introducing Sinkler, Sly, Burbadge, Condell, and Lowin on the stage. This was a retaliation for the children having in like fashion previously appropriated Jeronymo {The Spanish Tragedy), which belonged to the Chamber- lain's men. The curious thing about the transac- tion is that the Malcontent was originally produced in 1601, containing satirical allusions to Hamlet; and that in 1604 both plays, revised, were acted on the same stage, by the same actors. On 2d November Sejanus was entered on S. R. On 1 8th December a letter from Chamberlain to 152 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE, Winwood contains the following notice. " The tragedy of Gowry, with all action and actors, hath been twice represented by the King's players, with exceeding concourse of all sorts of people : but whether the matter or manner be not well handled, or that it be thought unfit that princes should be played on the stage in their lifetime, I hear that some great councillors are much displeased with it, and so 'tis thought it shall be forbidden." Shakespeare's work during this year is shown by the transcript of the Revels Accounts obtained by Malone. The King's men acted at Whitehall on November i The Moor of Venice; November 4, The Merry Wives of Windsor; December 28, Measure for Measure^ and Errors ; ['' Between January I and January 5 " in the forged copy of this entry still extant]* Love's Labour's Lost; January 7, Henry V.; January 8, Every One out of his Humour; February 2, Every One in his Humour; February 10, The Merchant of Venice; February II, The Spanish Maz; February 12, The Merchant of Venice again. I have given the full list as in the forged copy, but Malone is our safe guarantee for all the Shakespeare plays. It appears then that in this year Shakespeare must have written * This performance was at Southampton's house before Queen Anne, ANNALS. 153 Measure for Measure and Othello, and, as we have already seen, produced a revision of Hamlet. How much of this work was performed in 1603 we cannot tell ; but it is not likely that Othello was written till 1 604. The only definite dates in this year relate to other matters. In May Shakespeare entered an action at Strat- ford against one Philip Rogers for £i 15s. lOd., balance of account for malt. In August the King had a special order issued that every member of the company should attend at Somerset House when the Spanish ambassador came to England (Halliwell, Outlines, p. 1 36). The Christ- mas Court performances have been noted above. 1605. On 8th May, the old play on Leir was entered on S. R. On 4th May Phillips made his will, which was proved on the 13th. In it he leaves 30s. each to Shakespeare and Condell, and 20s. each to Fletcher, Armin, Cowley, Cook, and Tooley, all his fellows ; to Beeston, " his servant," 30s. ; to Gilburne, his " late apprentice," 40s. and clothes; to James Sandes, *^ his apprentice," 40s. and musical instruments ; to Hemings, Burbadge, and Sly, overseers and exe- cutors, a bowl of silver of £^ apiece. ^X^^ or THK '>^^ UNIVERSITY 154 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. On 3d July a ballad on the Yorkshire Tragedy was entered on S. R. ; the play which has been erroneously attributed to Shakespeare was no doubt acted about the same time. The London Prodigal was published, but not entered on S. R., this same year, with the name of William Shakespeare on the title-page. Jonson's Fox was acted by the King's men ; the chief actors were the same as those of Sejanus in 1603, except Phillips, who died in May, and Shakespeare, a most noteworthy exception. On 24th July, William Shakespeare, of Stratford- upon-Avon, bought of Ralph Huband an unexpired term of thirty-one years of a ninety-two years' lease of a moiety of the tithes of Stratford, Old Strat- ford, Bishopton, and Welcombe for £^0, subject to a rent payable to the corporation of £1'/, and £$ to John Barker. This, at the rate of interest then prevalent, was a dear purchase. In 1598 his '* purchasing these tithes " had been mooted at Stratford. As to Shakespeare's dramatic work during this year I have no doubt that Lear was on the stage in May, when the old play was published. I cannot otherwise account for the description of the latter in S. R. as a tragical history. Until Shakespeare's play this story had always been treated as a comedy. ANNALS. 155 Macbeth was probably produced in the winter, or in the following year. When James I. was at Oxford in August, he had been addressed in Latin by the three witches in this story, at an entertainment given by the University. No doubt James would be pleased by their prophecies, and desirous that they should be promulgated in the vulgar tongue. No more likely date can be found for the holograph letter which he is said to have addressed to Shakespeare. It may possibly be that that letter was a command to write this play. But, putting conjecture aside, Oldys says that Sheffield, Duke of Buckingham, told Lintot that he had a letter from the King to the dramatist. On October 9, Shakespeare's company performed before the Mayor and Corporation of Oxford. It may have been on this occasion that Shakespeare made the acquaintance of the Davenants, and stopped for the first time at the Crown, the license for which inn had only been taken out by Dave- nant in the preceding year. Enough has been written by others as to the scandal about Mrs. Davenant, and the tradition that William Davenant the poet, the godson of Shakespeare, was really his son. No foundation beyond a Joe Miller joke has been discovered for this report. At Court, ten plays were acted in the Christmas 156 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. season by the King's men ; among them the revived Mucedorus, which, as we have seen, was an apology for Jonson's satire in Volpone. 1 606. In this year, Shakespeare's portion of Timon of Athens, and that part of Cymbeline which is founded on so-called British history, were probably written. A play called The Puritan (Widow), evidently by Middleton, was acted by the Paul's boys this year, in which we find direct allusion to Richard III. and Macbeth, both of which were probably on the stage. The same scene contains a palpable parody of the action of the scene in Pericles in which Thaisa is recovered to life. That play must then have also been on the stage. It does not follow that it was the play as we have it. It may have been, and I believe was, Wilkins' play before Shakespeare's improvement had been introduced. During July or August, the King's men had per- formed three plays before the King of Denmark and his Majesty — two at Greenwich, one at Hampton Court ; and at Christmas they performed at Court nine plays : on December 26, 29 ; January 4, 6, 8 ; February 2, 5, 15, 27. That on 26th December was Lear, as we have it in the Quarto version. The Folio is that used on the stage of the same date. ANNALS. 157 1607. Anthony and Cleopatra must have been acted about this time, as well as Cyril Tourneur's Reven- ger's Tragedy. On 25 th June Susanna, Shakespeare's eldest daughter, married Dr. John Hall, an eminent physician at Stratford. On 6th August Middleton's Puritan Widow was entered on S. R., and imprinted as by W. S. Twine's Pattern of Painful Adventures^ on which Wilkins' version of Pericles was founded, was re- printed in this year. On 22d October Drayton's Merry Devil of Edmonton was entered on S. R. The entry on 5 th April under the same title, in which the author- ship is ascribed to T[homas] B[rewer], refers to the prose story, not the play. On 26th November King Lear was entered on S. R. On December 31 Shakespeare's brother Edmund was buried at St. Saviour's, Southwark, aged twenty-eight, " a player," '' with a forenoon knell of the great bell." There were thirteen Court performances by the King's men : on December 26, 27, 28 ; January 2, 6 (two plays), 7, 9, 17 (two plays), 26 ; February 2, 6. 158 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. 1608. On February 21 Elizabeth Hall, Shakespeare's granddaughter, was baptized at Stratford. The Yorkshire Tragedy was entered on S. R. May 20, as by William Shakespeare. The author- ship of this play has not been yet ascertained. On May 20 Anthony and Cleopatra^ and Pericles (not as in the Quarto version with the three last acts by Shakespeare), were entered on S. R. Wilkins' prose version of the play was printed this same year. I take the order of events regarding this play to have been as follows. Wilkins wrote a play on Pericles in 1606, which was parodied in Middleton's Puritan that same year ; in 1607 Twine's Pattern of Painful Adventures was reprinted ; in the same year Wilkins left the King's company and joined the Queen's ; in May 1608 the play was entered for publication, but not published ; it may have been '* stayed " by the Chamberlain's company ; in the same year Wilkins issued sur- reptitiously (it was not entered on S. R.) his " true history of the play as it was lately presented by the poet Gower." Such a proceeding as this, a printing of a prose narrative founded on an un- printed play and by the same author, is unparalleled in the history of Shakespearean drama. It must ANNALS. 159 be remembered that Wilkins was not even con- nected with the King's company at the time. Meanwhile Shakespeare had rewritten Acts iii.— v. In this new shape the play was acted in 1608, and was, as we know from an allusion in Pimltco, or Run Redcap (entered S. R. 15 th April 1609); very popular. An edition of the play thus altered was issued in 1609, not by Blount, who made the entry in May 1608, but by Gosson, as the 'Mate much-admired play . . . with the true relation of the whole history ... as also the no less strange and worthy accidents in the birth and life of his daughter Marina/' that is, of the part written by Shakespeare. This edition is very hurriedly and carelessly got up. In August Shakespeare commenced an action against Addenbroke. On September 9 Shakespeare's mother was buried at Stratford. Shakespeare's company had been shortly before travelling on the southern coast (Halliwell, who suppresses the exact date as usual). It is always dangerous to read personal feeling in a dramatist's work ; but the coincidences in date of his King John and Hamnet's death, of his Coriolanus and his mother's death, justify, I think, my opinion that his wife's grief is apotheosised in Constance, and his mother's character in Volumnia. This is i6o LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. confirmed by the great change that takes place in his work at this time; his next four plays are (ievoted to subjects of family reunion after separa- tion. On 1 6th October he was godfather to William Walker at Stratford. In this autumn Coriolanus was probably pro- duced. The Court Christmas performances by the King's men were twelve, on unknown dates. 1 609. On January 28 Troylus and Cressida was entered on S. R., and published from a surreptitious copy, with a preface, stating that it had been *' never staled with the stage." This preface was with- drawn before the close of the year, probably at the instance of the King's company. It has been, however, the cause of misleading many modern critics (myself included), as to the date of the pro- duction of the play. In the new issue the title states that it is printed ^' as it was acted by the King's Majesty's servants." On February 15, a verdict for £6 and £1, 4s. costs was given in favour of Shakespeare against John Addenbroke for debt, and execution issued. This suit began in August 1608 ; the precept for ANNALS. i6i a jury is dated 2 1st December, when an adjourn- ment of the trial probably took place. After the final judgment Addenbroke was non inventus, and on 7th June 1609, Shakespeare proceeded against his bail, one Horneby. All these proceedings were conducted not personally, but through his solicitor and cousin Thomas Greene. On 20th May the Sonnets were entered on S. R., and published with dedication to Mr. W. H., who, in my opinion, was some one connected with Lord Southampton, who had obtained a copy from him or his, and possibly may have given Shakespeare the hint to write them in the first instance, at the time (1594) when his friends were anxious for him to marry. Such a person was Sir William Hervey, the third husband of Southampton's mother: she died in 1607, and I conjecture that the delay in publishing the Sonnets was due to the fact that she wished them to remain in MS. at any rate during her lifetime. The copy used may have been found among her papers. On 20th May 1608 had been entered Pericles, and Antony and Cleopatra, which were not published by Blount, who made the entry. Pericles, how- ever, was printed surreptitiously in 1609 for another firm as we have it in the Quarto. This play was 1 62 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. probably then continued on the stage, as we find another edition required by i6ii. Cymbeline was probably produced in the autumn. This year being a plague year there was little dramatic activity ; even Jonson did not produce his Epicene for the King's men, but had it acted by the Chapel (or Revels) children. For the same reason there were no stage performances at Court at Christmas. 1610. On 4th January a patent was granted to R. Daborne, P. Rossiter, J. Tarbook, R. Jones, and R. Browne, to set up a new Children's company in Whitefriars. Their success was no doubt the cause that determined the Burbadges to take the Blackfriars into their own hands.* Accordingly they arranged to purchase at Lady Day the re- mainder of Evans' lease of the Blackfriars (they had already taken the boys, " now growing up to be men," Underwood,t Ostler, &c., to ''strengthen the King's service "), and to place men players * Mr. Halliwell {Outlines^ p. 150) gives December 1609 as the date of this change. This is certainly not in accordance with other facts which I shall adduce in the following pages j he gives no autho- rity for his statement. + Cuthbert Burbadge in 1635 adds Field by a slip of memory. ANNALS. 163 — Hemings, Condell, Shakespeare, &c., therein. Before the end of the year we accordingly find the boys alluded to acting as members of the King's company in Jonson's Alchemist. The chief players were Burbadge, Hemings, Lowin, Ostler, Condell, Underwood, Cooke, Tooley, Armin, and Egglestone. Of these Tooley and Cooke had been boy actors in the Chamberlain's company, Underwood and Ostler in the Revels children. Shakespeare's name does not occur ; nor do I find any evidence except Mr. Halliwell's unsupported assertion {Outlines^ p. 1 1 1), that he continued to act at this date. It is noticeable that there are ten actors mentioned ; this is very unusual in these play lists, and suggests that the number of sharers may have been in- creased from eight to ten. There are certainly about this time allusions to ten shares scattered about in contemporary plays. If this be the case, Shakespeare would no longer be a shareholder : the whole question of his shares is involved in difficulty, and this conjecture is only thrown out to call attention to any allusions in writings of this date that may throw light on the matter. The King's men performed fifteen plays at Court this Christmas. In this year, in my opinion, Shakespeare having produced The Winter's Tale and The Tempest^ retired i64 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. from theatrical work. Malone's hypothesis that Sir W. Herbert's mention of Sir G. Buck's " allowing " the former play implies a date sub- sequent to August 1610, is worthless ; Buck had the ^'allowing" of plays in his hands from 1607 onwards. There is direct evidence that the Black- friars Theatre was occupied even after 161 1 by other companies. Field's Amends for Ladies was acted there by the Prince's and the Lady Eliza- beth's men ; and Charles could not be called Prince till after the death of Henry, 6th November 161 2. The production of Field's play was probably in the spring 161 3. By careful comparison of the dry documents concerning shareholders in 1635, with those of the Blackfriars property in 1 596, we ascer- tain that J. Burbadge bought that property 4th February 1596; that in November the establish- ment of a theatre there was petitioned against, but carried out soon after; that a lease of twenty-one years was granted to Evans, either at Christmas 1596 or Lady Day 1597, most probably the latter; that at the end of thirteen years the Burbadges bought the remaining eight years of the lease, pro- bably at Lady Day 1 6 10, and took possession of the building ; — but that they at the same time took the boys into the King's company or set up Hemings, Shakespeare, &c., in the Blackfriars is mere rhetoric ANNALS. 165 of Cuthbert's. Underwood and Ostler had both left the Revels children before the performance of Jonson's Epicene in 1609, ^^id Field did not join the King's men till 161 8-19. In June Shakespeare purchased twenty acres of pasture land from the Combes. At Christmas the King's men performed fifteen plays at Court. 1611. In this year unusual efforts seem to have been made by the King's company to secure authors of repute to write for their playhouse. Jonson's Catiline was acted by nearly the same cast as The Alchemist, the only change being that Robinson appears in the list instead of Armin. The second Maiden^s Tragedy was produced in October, most likely written by Tourneur, having been preceded by the first Maid's Tragedy by Beaumont and Fletcher, who also in this year brought out their Philaster and King and no King: in all we have five new plays of the first rank, acted by a com- pany that hitherto appears to have almost entirely depended on about two plays from Shakespeare, and occasionally a third by some other hand, as sufficient novelty to attract a year's full houses. It is this quasi monopoly in writing for his com- i66 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. pany that explains Shakespeare's accumulation of property ; and it is to me incredible that Macbeth, The Winters Tale, Cymbeline, and The Tempest should all have been produced in this year. Yet this seems to be the belief of practical critics who believe only what can be supported by what they term '* positive evidence," the evidence in this case being that Forman, the astrological charlatan, entered in his note-book that he had seen acted Cymbeltne, Macbeth, 20th April 1610 [1611]; Richard 11. , 30th April 161 1 ; Winter's Tale, May 15. This evidence has, however, value of another kind, for it shows that a large number of revivals took place in this year ; indeed, coupling this with the fact that at this Christmas and the next the un- precedented number of fifty plays were performed by the King's men at Court, it is likely that all Shakespeare's plays were revived immediately after his retirement from the stage. We cannot trace fifty plays to the possession of his company at this date without including them. On September 11 Shakespeare's name occurs in the margin of a folio page of donors (including all the principal inhabitants of Stratford) to a subscription list ^* towards the charge of prosecut- ing the bill in Parliament for the better repair of the highways." This appears to confirm the view ANNALS. 167 that Shakespeare was at this time residing in Stratford. On December 16 the play of Lord Cromwell was entered on S. R., and published as by W. S. The plays at Court were twenty-two : on October 31; November i, 5; December 26; January 5, February 23, before the King ; on November 9, 19; December 16, 31 ; January 7, 15 ; February 19, 20, 28 ; April 3, 16, before Prince Henry and Charles, Duke of York ; on February 9, 20 {sic)y before the Prince ; on March 28, April 26, before the Lady Elizabeth. 1612. On February 3 the burial of Gilbert Shakespeare ^' adolescens " was entered in the Stratford Register. I agree with Mr. French that this was most likely Shakespeare's brother. In this year a suit was commenced " Lane Greene, and Shakespeare compP* " on the ground that they had to pay too large a proportion of the reserved rent of the tithes purchased in 1605. It appears from the draft of the bill filed before Lord Ellesmere that Shakespeare's income from this source was £60. The plays produced by the King's men were The Woman^s Prize^ Cardenno (i.e.y CardeneSj or 1 68 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. Lovers Pilgrimage), and The Captain, by Fletcher and his coadjutors, and the Duchess of Malfi by Webster, who also published The White Devil, with the remarkable allusion to the " right happy and copious industry" of Shakespeare, Dekker, and Heywood. Curiously enough, this is often referred to even now as a eulogy on Webster's part; it is really damning with faint praise the poet to whom he hoped to be the successor as provider of plays to the King's company. The Passionate Pilgrim reached a third edition, and was reissued as " certain amorous Sonnets between Venus and Adonis," by W. Shakespeare ; '' whereunto is added two love epistles " between Paris and Helen. These were stolen from Hey- wood's Troja Britannica of 1609. In his Apology for Actors (16 12), he complains of the injury done him, as it might lead to unjust suspicion of piracy on his part, and adds, ^*As I must acknowledge my lines not worthy his patronage under whom he hath published them, so the author I know much offended with M. Jaggard that altogether unknown to him presumed to make so bold with his name." In consequence, no doubt, of this remonstrance, Jaggard had to substitute a new title-page, from which Shakespeare's name was entirely omitted. He had allowed his name to be used in the titles ANNALS. 169 of The London Prodigal in 1605, of The Yorkshire Tragedy m 1608, of The Passionate Pilgrim of 1609, and even of Sir John Oldcastle in 1600 without murmuring ; but directly the interests of another demand justice at his hands he takes prompt action, and compels the piratical publisher to withdraw his name altogether. The King's men at the Christmas festivities, &c., presented at Court fourteen plays before the King and fourteen before the Prince, the Lady Elizabeth, and the Prince Palatine. Among the plays so represented were Philaster, The Knot of Fools y Much Ado about Nothing, The Maid^s Tragedy j The Merry Devil of Edtnonton, The Tempest^ A King and no Kingy The Twins^ Tragedy^ The Winter's Tale, Sir John Falstaff (The Merry Wives of Windsor) ^ The Moor of Venice^ The Nobleman^ Cesar's Tragedy^ Love lies a bleeding (Philaster repeated), before the Prince, Lady Elizabeth, and the Palatine ; A Bad Beginning makes a Good Ending (? AWs Well that Ends Well] but entered S. R. 1660 as Ford's, and destroyed in MS. by Warburton's servant ; Ford's revision must, of course, have been later than 1623), The Captain, The Alchemist y Cardenno, The Hotspur (i Henry IV.), Benedicte and Betteris (Much Ado about Nothing), before the King. See Stan- hope's Accounts (Halliwell, Outlines, p. 597, third I70 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. edition, and Revels Accounts, p. xxiii.) Of these twenty Shakespeare contributes nine, Fletcher (with Beaumont) six, Jonson one, Tourneur one, Dray- ton (?) one, and two have not been identified. 1613. On 4th February Richard Shakespeare, the poet's only surviving brother, was buried at Stratford. On 1 0th March Shakespeare purchased in Black- friars a house with yard and haberdasher's shop for £\\0, subject to a mortgage of £60. This property had greatly increased in value since 1604, when it was sold for ;^iOO, probably in consequence of the immediate vicinity of the theatre, which drew large custom for feathers and other articles of attire to Blackfriars. Shakespeare leased it to John Robinson, who had by this time seen the absurdity in a business point of view of his opposi- tion to the establishment of the theatre in 1596. One of the trustees for the legal estate (the mortgage remaining unredeemed till 16 1 3) was John Heming, unquestionably Shakespeare's friend the actor. On 8th June the King's men played at Court before the Duke of Savoy's ambassadors. On 29th June the Globe Theatre was burnt down, *' while Burbadge's company were acting the play of Henry VIIL, and there shooting off ANNALS. 171 certain chambers by way of triumph " (T. Lorkin's letter). Sir H. Wotton says it was " a new play called All is True, representing some principal pieces of the reign of Henry VIII." It was of course Shakespeare's play in its original form. A Fool must have acted in it, for in the old ballad about this fire, " the reprobates prayed for the fool and Henry Condy " (Condell), who were appa- rently the last actors who escaped. It has been conjectured that at this time Shake- speare retired from the stage, having sold his shares in the Globe and Blackfriars in order to purchase the house above mentioned. There is no particle of evidence that he had not saved the ;^8o then paid from his usual economies, or that if he had wished to sell his shares he could have done so. It is true that shares in the later Globe (rebuilt 161 3—14) were so sold; but all the evidence as to the theatre in which Shakespeare was concerned points the other way. It appears from the 1635 documents that Hemings, Shakespeare, &c., had their shares without paying any consideration, and that all the shares held by Pope, Kempe, Bryan, Shakespeare, Sly, and Cowley had reverted by 1 6 14 into the hands of the surviving shareholders, the Burbadges, Hemings, and Condell. If we examine the wills of these men, we find that Pope indeed, in 172 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. 1603, leaves all his estate or interest in the Globe, '' which I have or ought to have," to Mary Clark and Thomas Bromley; but that Phillips in 1605, and Cooke in 16 14, make no mention of any shares. It seems most likely that this will of Pope's raised the question as to whether these shares were held during office as actor or absolutely. There can be little doubt that the former was the case, as is only reasonable where the shares, as in the first Globe, were given *' without consideration." Purchased shares, like those in the latter Globe, are in a dif- ferent position. At any rate, the shares left to Bromley and Clark in fact reverted to the surviv- ing shareholders. Sly's will in 1608, which is in similar terms to Pope's, leaves his shares to Robert Brown, who, like Clark and Bromley, disappears from all future history of these shares. Moreover, there is no mention of any shares belonging to Cowley, Beeston, or Kempe : yet there can be no doubt that Kempe was till 1599 a shareholder. On 15th July, in the Ecclesiastical Court at Worcester, the case of Dr. John Hall v. John Lane, for slandering his wife, was heard, and the defendant excommunicated on the 27th. There were sixteen plays performed at Court by the King's men this year, on November 4, 16 ; Jan- uary 10; February 4, 8, 10, 18; and nine others. ANNALS. 173 1614. Fletcher, Webster, and Beaumont had all left the King's men, and now, 31st October, Jonson leaves them too, and produces his Bartholomew Fair at the Hope, with abundant sneers at Shakespeare's plays, especially the Tempest and Winter^s Tale. He does not allude to Henry VIII. Fletcher was now, as well as Jonson, a writer for the Princess Elizabeth's players. In July John Combe left Shakespeare £^ as a legacy. In the autumn an attempt was made by W. Combe, the squire of Welcombe, to inclose a large portion of the neighbouring common fields ; this attempt was opposed by the Corporation, but sup- ported by Mr. Manwaring and Shakespeare. The latter clearly acted simply with a view to his own personal interest. His name as an ancient freeholder occurs in a list, 5th September, as having claim for compensation if the inclosure took place. On 1 8th October, Replingham, Combe's agent, covenanted to give him full compensation for injury by *' any inclosure or decay of tillage : " on 1 6th November he went to London : on 17th November his "cousin," T. Greene, town clerk of Stratford and at the same time his own solicitor, called to see him : he said 174 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. the inclosures were to be less than had been repre- sented, that nothing would be done till April, and that he and Mr. Hall thought nothing would be done at all. On 23d December letters to Mr. Man- waring and Shakespeare were written, with " almost all the company's hands " to them, and a private letter in addition by Greene to '' my cousin," with copies of all the acts of the Corporation, and notes of the inconveniences that would result from the inclosure. The inclosure was not made, and Shake- speare did not get his compensation. 1616. On 25 th January the first draft of Shakespeare's will was drawn up. On loth February his daughter Judith was married without a license to T. Quiney, vintner of Stratford; they were summoned in conse- quence to the Ecclesiastical Court of Worcester a few weeks after. On 25th March the will was executed, and on 25th April " Will. Shakspere, gent." was entered in the burial register at Stratford. He died just before completing his fifty-fourth year ; but it is usually supposed on the 23d, his birthday. ( 175 ) SECTION IV. THE CHRONOLOGICAL SUCCESSION OF SHAKESPEARe's PLAYS. It is of the greatest importance, in investigating the chronological succession of an author's works, that we should start from a definite and certain date. The neglect of this point, especially in so difficult an instance as the present, involves us too often in thorny discussions at the very onset. Such an epoch is presented us at once by the publication of Shakespeare's earliest poem. I begin therefore at this point. Venus and Adonis was entered on S. R. i8th April 1593 by Richard Field, printer, son of Henry Field, tanner, of Stratford-on-Avon, who parted with his copyright to Mr. Harrison, senior, 25th June 1594. There were editions in 1593, 1594 (R. Field) ; 1596 (R. Field for J. Harrison); 1599 and 1602, his (VJ. Leake) ; 16 17 (W. Barrett) ; and 1620 (J. Parker). Harrison had assigned his copy- right to Leake 25th June 1596. It was transferred 176 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. to W. Barrett i6th February 1616-17 ; and again to J. Parker 8th March 1620. This was *' the first heir of my invention," which means — the first pro- duction in which I have had no co-labourer. Com- pare Ford's expression " the first-fruits of my leisure " applied to ^Tis pity she's &c., although he had certainly at that time written plays in connec- tion with Dekker and others. Lucrece. Entered on 9th May 1594 in S. R. by Mr. Harrison, senior. Editions 1594 (R. Field for J. Harrison); 1598 (P. S. for J. Harrison); 1600 (J. H. for J. Harrison); 1607 (N. O. for J. Harrison ; 1616 (T. G. for R. Jackson). This poem is a pendant to the former ; the one exhibiting woman's chastity, the other her lust. Such oppo- sition of subject in successive productions is very characteristic of Shakespeare. A Lover's Complaint, published with the Sonnets 1609, written probably 1593—4, between the Venus and Lucrece. Sonnets, entered on S. R. 20th May 1609 for T. Thorpe. I have on pp. 25, 120 already stated my opinion that these were written during 1594-8. Titus Andronicus was a new play in 1594, acted for the first time by Sussex' men at the Rose on 23d January. Richard IIL was no doubt acted this same SUCCESSION OF HIS PLAYS. 177 year by the Chamberlain's men ; just before the old play which had been acted by the Queen's players was published (S. R. 19th June 1594). A Richard is alluded to in John Weever's EpigramSy published 1599, when the author was twenty-three, but written when he was not twenty; they must therefore date at latest in 1596 (not 1595 as usu- ally stated). Weever mentions Venus and AdoniSy LucrecCy RomeOy and Richard as the issue of honey- tongued Shakespeare. We shall see that RomeOy as referred to here, was acted in 1595-6, and I believe the Richard referred to is the Richard 11. of 1595. Edward III. I have shown in p. 118 to be an alteration of an old play of Marlowe's written in 1590, revived in 1594 about the autumn, after Lucrece was published. It will be most convenient to defer the consideration of authorship of the pre- ceding plays till I have to treat of Henry VI.; the dates of editions of all the plays will be exhibited in tabular form further on, which will save much repetition and interruption of argument. We now come to an unquestionable date; and it is from this, the first recorded date in connection with an undoubted play, that I wish the reader to regard our investigation of play dates as beginning. 178 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. 1594- December 28. Shakespeare's only farcical comedy of Errors was acted at Gray's Inn at night : the same players had acted before the Queen at Greenwich on that day, very likely in the same comedy. In April 1595 the English agent in Edinburgh wrote to Burghley, how ill King James took it that the comedians in London should scorn the king and people of Scotland in their plays. The barrenness of Scotland is mentioned in iii. 2. Neither would James approve of a play in which witchcraft and exorcising is so constantly ridiculed. The opening scene is very like in method to that of Midsummer-Nighfs Dream; and the reiterated allusions by either Dromio to being transformed to an ass (ii. 2. 201 ; iii. i. 15 ; iv. 4. 28 ; iii. 2. yy) remind us so strongly of that play as almost to infer contemporaneity of production ; especially as in iii. i. 47 the same quibble, an ass and ace, occurs as in Midsummer-Nighf s Dream, v. i. 317. Now in 1593, in his Pierce's Supererogation, and in 1592 in his Four Letters, Gabriel Harvey had rung the changes on an ass and a Nash even to wearisome- ness ; just as Shakespeare in this play puns on an ell and a Nell (iii. 2. 112). This may seem very forced ; but I must remind the reader, that s and sh SUCCESSION OF HIS PLAYS. 179 were not distinguished in pronunciation except by pedants at the end of the sixteenth century. It seems then most likely that in dwelHng on this transformation, Shakespeare meant to recall to his audience the dyslogistic name inflicted on his old enemy Nash by Gabriel Harvey. All this points to a production of the play in 1594, by the Chamberlain's men ; but there are also indications of its having been altered from an earlier version. In the stage directions there are traces of the name Juliana ^ for Luciana : in the text Dowsabel occurs instead of Nell, and in v. I, the prefix Fat. (Father) has been clearly replaced by Mar. (Mer- chant) in a revision ; note especially v. i. 195, where both prefixes have by a common printer's error been inserted at once. The older form, again, had Antipholus Sereptus for A. of Syracuse, and Erotes or Erratis for A. of Ephesus ; and it had twenty- five years of separation between the parents for thirty-three in the later version. This last differ- ence occurs in i. i, which is throughout written in a more mechanical and antique style of metre than the rest of the play ; and, indeed seems to be one of the earliest specimens left us of Shakespeare's attempts to bombast out a blank verse. There is * This name occurs in Apollonius and Sylla, of which, more hereafter. i8o LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. also the name Menaphon (v. i. 368), which is likely to have been adopted from Greene's Menaphon (1589), who again took it from Marlowe's Tamber- laine (1587-8). The Adam "that goes in the calf-skin," surely alludes to the Adam in the Looking-glass for London (1590), whose "calf-skin jests " were even after seven years an object of ridicule to the playwrights. For all these reasons I believe that a version of this play was acted c. 1590, perhaps in the winter of that year. It does not follow that that version was entirely by Shake- speare, as the present play is ; he may have replaced a coadjutor's work of 1590 by his own of 1594. The plot, with its time-unity, is not likely to be of his arranging. As to the pun on the war made by France against her heir (iii. 2. 126), which is usually relied on for the date of production, it merely gives as limits August 1589, when the war of succession began, and 27th February 1594, when Henri IV. was crowned. It does, however, enable us to say positively that the first performance of the play was before the formation of the Chamberlain's company, who only revived it, no doubt in an amended shape, on 28th December 1594, most likely for the sake of the Court performance. The original plot was probably suggested by Plautus' Mencechmt and Amphitryo ; and perhaps more directly by the SUCCESSION OF HIS PLAYS. i8i History of Error performed by the Chapel children in 1576, which, by the bye, has nothing to do with the Ferrar of the Earl of Sussex' men in 1582. But we cannot assume in these early plays that Shakespeare was the plotter. It is certain, how- ever, that he did afterwards adopt the likeness of twins in Twelfth Night as a means of introducing " errors " on the stage. 1595. January 26 was the date of the marriage of William Stanley, Earl of Derby, at Greenwich. Such events were usually celebrated with the accompaniment of plays or interludes, masques written specially for the occasion not having yet become fashionable. The company of players employed at these nuptials would certainly be the Chamberlain's, who had, so lately as the year before, been in the employ of the Earl's brother Ferdinand. No play known to us is so fit for the purpose as Midsummer -Nights Dream, which in its present form is certainly of this date. About the same time Edward Russel, Earl of Bedford, married Lucy Harrington. Both marriages may have been enlivened by this performance. This is rendered more probable by the identity of the Oberon story with that of Drayton's Nymphidia, whose special i82 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. patroness at this time was the newly married Countess of Bedford. That poem contains an allusion to Don Quixote, which could not well have been written till i6l2, and certainly not till 1605 ; but Drayton is known to have constantly altered his poems by way of addition and omission, and no date of original production can in his case be fixed by allusions of this kind. The date of the play here given is again confirmed by the description of the weather in ii. 2. In 1594, and in that year only, is there on record such an inversion of the seasons as is there spoken of. Chute's Cephalus and Procris was entered on S. R., 28th September 1593; Marlowe's Hero and Leander, 22d October 1593; Marlowe and Nash's Dtdo was printed in 1594. All these stories are alluded to in the play. The date of the Court performance must be in the winter of 1594-5. ^^t the traces of the play having been altered from a version for the stage are numerous. There is a double ending. Robin's final speech is palpably a stage epilogue, while what precedes from ^' Enter Puck " to '^ break of day — Exeunt " is very appropriate for a marriage entertain- ment, but scarcely suited to the stage. In Acts iv. and v., again, we find in the speech-prefixes Dukej Duchess, Clown for Theseus, Hippolita, Bottom : such variations are nearly always marks of altera- SUCCESSION OF HIS PLAYS. 183 tion, the unnamed characters being anterior in date. In the prose scenes speeches are several times assigned to wrong speakers, another common mark of alteration. In the Fairies the character of Moth (Mote) has been excised in the text, though he still remains among the dramatis personce. It is not, I think, possible to say which parts of the play were added for the Court performance; but a careful examination has convinced me that wherever Robin occurs in the stage-directions or speech-prefixes scarcely any, if any, alteration has been made ; Puckf on the contrary, indicates change. The date of the stage play may, I think, be put in the winter of 1592; and if so it was acted, not at the Rose, but where Lord Strange's company were travelling. For the allusion in v. i. 52, "The thrice three Muses mourning for the death of Learning, late deceased in beggary," to Spenser's Tears of the Muses (1591), or Greene's death, 3d September 1592, could not, in either interpretation, be much later than the autumn of 1592; and tha lines in ii. i. 156 — " I am a spirit of no common rate ; The summer still doth tend upon my state, And I do love thee " — are so closely like those in Nash's Summer^s Last Willj where Summer says — 1 84 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. " Died I had indeed unto the earth, But that Eliza, England's beauteous Queen, On whom all seasons prosperously attend^ Forbad the execution of my fate Until her joyful progress was expired " — that I think they are alluded to by Shakespeare. The singularly fine summer of 1592 is attributed to the influence of Elizabeth, the Fairy Queen. Nash's play was performed at the Archbishop's palace at Croydon in Michaelmas term of the same year by a '' number of hammer-handed clowns (for so it pleaseth them in modesty to name them- selves) ; " but I believe the company originally satirised in Shakespeare's play was the Earl of Sussex', Bottom, the chief clown, being intended for Robert Greene. Thus much for date of produc- tion. For the title of the play, compare the con- clusion of The Taming of a Shrew and Peele's Old Wife^s Tale, the latter of which is performed in a dream, and the former is supposed by Sly to be so ; the interpretation that it means a play performed at midsummer is quite inconsistent with iv. I. 190, &c., and other passages. The names of the personages are interesting, because they show us what books Shakespeare was reading at this time : from North's Plutarch^ Life of Theseus, the first in the book, he got Periginia (Perigouna), Aegles, Ariadne, Antiope, and Hippohta; from SUCCESSION OF HIS PLAYS. 185 Chaucer's Knighfs Tale, also the first in the printed editions, which he afterwards dramatised, Philos- trate ; from Greene's fames IV. Oberon. This last name, with Titania's, also occurs in the Queen's Entertainment at Lord Hertford's, 1591. The time- analysis of this play has probably been disturbed by omissions in producing the Court version. I. i, 128-251 ought to form, and probably did, in the original play, a separate scene; it certainly does not take place in the palace. To the same cause must be attributed the confusion as to the moon's age; cf. i. i. 209 with the opening lines : the new moon was an afterthought, and evidently derived from a form of the story in which the first day of the month and the new moon were coincident after the Greek time-reckoning. It is worth notice that not only is the title of Preston's Cambyses parodied in the Pyramus interlude, but his pension of sixpence a day is ridiculed in iv. 2. Nor must we quite pass over the fact, which confirms the 1595 date, that on 30th August 1594, at the baptism of Prince Henry (of Scotland), the tame lion which was to have been brought in in the triumph was replaced by a Moor, '' because his presence might have brought some fear." The play is nearly as much an error play (iii. 2. 368) as the Errors itself, and, like it, has no known 1 86 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. immediate source for the plot. The Pyramus interlude is clearly based on C. Robinson's Hand- full oj Pleasant Delights (1584); and some of the fairy story may have been suggested by Monte- mayor's Diana. The line ii. 2. 104, is from Peek's Edward I. (near end), " how nature strove in them to show her art," and I think the man who dares not come in the moon because it is in snuff may allude to the offence given at Court by Lyly's Endymion in 1588. An absolute downward limit of date is given by a line imitated in Doctor Doddypol, a play alluded to in 1596 by Nash, and spoiled in the imitation — " Hanging on every leaf an orient pearl, Which shook together by the silken wind Of their loose mantles made a silver chime." This solidification of the dewdrops does not occur in the Shakespeare parallel, ii. I. 15. Mr. Halliwell's fancy that Spenser's line in Fairy Queen, vi. — '' Through hills and dales, through bushes and through briers " must have been imitated by Shake- speare in ii. I. 2, is very flimsy; hill and dale, bush and brier, are commonplaces of the time. Nor is there any proof that this song could not have been transmitted to Ireland in 1593 or 1594. SUCCESSION OF HIS PLAYS. 187 1595- Richard II. cannot be definitely dated by external evidence, but all competent critics agree that it is the earliest of Shakespeare's historical plays ; the question of authorship, &c., of Richard III. being reserved for the present. It is a tragedy like Mar- lowe's Edward II., not a " life and death " history. The Civil Wars of Daniel, from which Shakespeare seems to have derived a few hints, was entered on S, R. nth October 1594. The play probably was produced after this date, and before the publication of the Pope's bull in 1596, inciting the Queen's subjects to depose her. In consequence of this bull the abdication scene was omitted in representa- tion, and in the editions during Elizabeth's lifetime. In like manner, Hay ward was imprisoned for pub- lishing in 1599 his History of the First Year of Henry /F., which is simply the story of Richard's abdication. The omitted scene was restored in 1608 under James I. as *' new additions." Such new additions on title-pages are often restorations of omitted passages. The Folio copy omits a few other speeches, the play having been evidently found too long in representation ; but it contains the abdication scene. This being the first play of Shakespeare's that passed the press was carelessly 1 88 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. corrected, whence much apparently un Shakespearian and halting metre, which is easily set right. The source of the plot is Holinshed's Chronicle; '* the earlier play on Richard II. lately printed " (says Mr. Stokes in 1878) "I have not seen; but it concludes with the murder of the Duke of Gloster." The play seen at the Globe by Forman in 161 1 began with the rebellion of Wat Tyler. It was not Shake- speare's. There is no prose in this play, in John , or the Comedy of Errors; a sign of early work. 1595- The Two Gentlemen of Verona is a striking instance of the difficulties in which we are involved if we attempt to assign a single date for the production of every play, and neglect the fact that alterations were and are continually made by authors in their works. Drake and Chalmers date this play in 1595 ; Gervinus, DeHus, and Stokes 1 591. Malone at different times adopted both dates. I believe that all these opinions are reconcilable, that the play was produced in 1591, with work by a second hand in it, which was cut out and replaced by Shakespeare's own in 1595. For a date after 1593 is distinctly indicated in the play as we have it by the allusions to Hero and Leander in i. I. 21, iii. I. 119; and to the pestilence in ii. i. 20; SUCCESSION OF HIS PLAYS. 189 a still closer approximation is shown to the Merchant of Venice, by the mistake of Padua for Milan in ii. 5. 2. If Shakespeare had not, at the time when he finally produced the Two Gentlemen, begun his study for the Venetian story, whence this name ? It only occurs there, once in Much Ado, and in the non-Shakespearian parts of The Taming of the Shrew. In like manner the mistake of Verona for Milan in iii. 4. 81, v. 4. 129, indicates that he had been preparing Romeo and Juliet. That our play lies between the Errors and the Dream on one hand and The Merchant on the other, becomes pretty clear by comparing the development of character in the Dromios, Launce and Speed, Lancelot Gobbo ; in Lucetta and Nerissa ; in Demetrius and Lysander, Valentine and Proteus. Nor are marks of the twofold date wanting. In the first two acts we find Valentine at the Emperor's court, no Duke mentioned ; in the last three at the Duke's, no Emperor mentioned. The turning-point is in ii. 4, where, though " Emperor " occurs in the text, " Duke " is used in the stage directions. In i. I. 32, "If haply won perhaps a hapless gain ; if lost, why then a grievous labour won," there is surely an allusion to Lovers Labour^s Won, and Love's Labour's Lost ; we shall see here- after that in 1591 these were quite recent plays. 190 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. The Eglamour of Verona mentioned in i. 2. 9 is not the Eglamour of Milan who appears in iv. 3, V. I. Style and metre require an early date for i. ii. 1-3 and parts of iii. i ; but in any argument of an internal nature, Johnson's weighty remark should be remembered — '^ From mere inequality, in works of imagination, nothing can with exactness be inferred." The immediate origin of the plot is unknown ; parts of the story are identical with those of The Shepherdess Filismena in Montemayor's Diana, translated in MS. by Young, c. 1583, and of Bandello's Apollonius and Sylla in Rich's Fare- well to Military Profession (1581). Felix and Philio- mena had been dramatised and acted at Court by the Queen's players, 1584-5. That the revision of The Two Gentlemen was hurriedly performed is clear from the unusually large number of Exits and Entrances that are not marked. This hurry accounts, in some degree, for the weakness of the play, which induces so many critics to insist on an early date for it as a whole. Yet the special blemish they discover, v. 4. ^'^y the yielding up of Silvia by Valentine, is paralleled in the Dream, where (iii. 2. 163) Lysander says, '' With all my heart, in Hermia's love I yield you up my part : " and that Shakespeare felt the unreality of this part of the plot is clear from Two Gentlemen, v. 4. 25, which to SUCCESSION OF HIS PLAYS. 191 me seems a manifest reminiscence of his last play, " How like a dream is this I see and hear ! " (cf. Midsummer- Nighfs Dream^ iv. i. 190, "It seems to me that yet we sleep, we dream"). He had been reading Chaucer, as we know, and from him had adopted this method of presenting stories in a dream. A slighter reminiscence of ChdiUC&c^s>Knighfs Tale occurs in the mention of Theseus, iv. 4. 173. 1595-6. Romeo and Juliet was surreptitiously printed by J. Danter in 1597; '^ as it hath been often with great applause played (publicly), by the Rt. Hon. the L. of Hunsdon, his servants." This edition must have been printed in 1596 (old reckoning), for the players would have been called the Cham- berlain's servants except during the tenure of that office by W. Brooke, Lord Cobham, from 23d July 1596 to 5th March 1597. That it was on the stage as well as Richard 11. in 1595-6, appears from Weever's Epigrams. A correct edition of Romeo appeared in 1599. The relation of these two versions of the play presents a difficult pro- blem. The 1599 Quarto Qg is unquestionably the play of 1595-6, as acted by the then Chamberlain's players at the Theater; for it does not follow, as Mr. Halliwell supposes, that because they continued 192 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. to act it when called Lord Hunsdon's players, they had not ever acted it before. Such reasoning would compel us to assign all plays published as " acted by the King's players " to a date subsequent to 1602 — Hamlet, for example, and Troylus and Cressida. Nor does it follow that because it was acted at the Curtain, where Marston mentions it in his Scourge of Villany (S. R. 8th September 1598), that it wdi^ produced ai that same theatre. Mr. P. A. Daniel has shown, in his Parallel Text Edition, that the 1597 Quarto Qj is a shortened version of the play, no doubt for stage purposes (compare the Quartos in i, i ; i. 3 ; iii. i). He has also with great ingenuity conclusively proved that Q2 is a revised copy made on a text in many places iden- tical with Qi (see i. I. 122 ; i. 4. 62 ; ii. 3. 1-4; iii. 2. 85; iii. 3. 38-45; iii- 5- i77-i8i ; iv. i. 95-98, no; v. 3. 102, 107). But his conclusion that Qi is partly made up from notes taken during the performance, is not borne out by any evidence. There are no ^' mistakes of the ear " in this play, nor is this conclusion consistent with his own theory that Q2 was a revision made on the text of Q^. I owe what I believe to be the real solution to a hint from my son, a boy of thirteen. When a play was written and licensed, at least three copies would be made of it. One, with the Master of SUCCESSION OF HIS PLAYS. 193 the Revels' endorsement (which I will call R), would be kept in the archives of the theatre intact ; one would be made for the manager (M), which would have occasional notes of stage direction, &c., inserted ; and one, an acting copy, for the prompter (P), usually much abridged from the original and always altered : this would contain stage directions, &c., in full, but in the unaltered passages would be identical with M. Now Q^ shows evident signs of being printed from a shortened copy P; Q2 is manifestly a revision of a full copy M. The genealogy of the Quartos then stands thus : — R {authoT^s first version). I I P M Q Q2 is, according to this theory, a revised version made on a complete copy of an early version of the play, while Q^ is printed from the prompter's copy of the same early version. When the revi- sion took place this copy would be thrown aside as worthless ; and any dishonest employe of the theatre could sell it to an equally dishonest publisher, who would pubHsh it as the play now acted. If this solution be correct, and it is the only one yet pro- N 194 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. posed that meets all the difficulties of the case, Qj is specially interesting as being the earhest extant play (as acted) in which Shakespeare had a share. For it is clear that some passages in it, especially ii. 6, the laments in iv. 5, and Paris' dirge in v. 3, are not only unlike the corresponding passages in Q2, but unlike anything we have from Shakespeare's hand. The date of the early form of the play was 1591, eleven years after the earthquake of 1580 (i- 3- 23, 30). As confirmatory of the conclusion that Q2 was revised from an early play note that in i. I the servants are nameless in Qj, but have names in the stage directions in Q2; that in i. 3 the servant is called clown in Qj ; that in iii. 5 in Q2, where the prefixes vary between Lady and Mother, it is in the unaltered parts that Mother is used as in Qi, but Lady always where enough alteration has taken place to require a completely fresh tran- script ; that in v. 3 there is a double entry marked for the Capulets (a sure sign) ; that in ii. 3. 1-4, V. 3. 108— III, duplicate versions occur. On the other hand, the printing of the Nurse's speeches in italics in both Quartos is conclusive for identity of origin in that scene. Other points worth noting are that "Queen Mab, what's she?" i. 4. 55 in Qi are omitted in Qg : Mab had become well known in 1595, probably through Drayton's Nymphidia, SUCCESSION OF HIS PLAYS. 195 In ii. 2. 144, " I am afraid all this is but a dream," reminds us of similar passages in Errors, ii. 2. 1 84 ; Tivo Gentlemen, v. 4. 26; and Dream, iv. i. 199, &c. W. Kempe acted the part of Peter (see entry in iv. 5) ; Balthazar is proparoxyton in v. I. The line in iii. 2, 75, " O serpent heart hid with a flowering face " (where Qj has '' serpent's hate "), is very like the often-quoted ^^ O tiger's heart wrapt in a woman's hide " (j Henry VI. i. 4. 137). The play is founded on Arthur Brooke's poem, The Tragical Histoty of Romeus and Juliet, containing a rare example of true constancy. Constancy in love is its main subject. He took the Italian form of the name Romeo, and the time of Juliet's sleep forty-two hours (^' forty at least " in the novel) from Rhomeo and Julietta in Painter's Palace of Pleasure. Much unnecessary writing has been expended on this forty-two hours ; the plot requires forty-eight. Daniel, in his Rosamund (S. R. February 1591-2), and the author of Doctor Doddypol (c. October 1594), have passages very like some in this play. A ballad founded on the play was entered S. R. 15 th August 1596. On the mention of '^ the first and second cause " in ii. 4. 26 and (in Qj only) in iii. i, some critics base the conclusion that this play must be subsequent to Saviolo's Book of Honour, &c. (S. R. 19th November 1594). I believe that the book 196 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. referred to is The Book of Honor and Arms, wherein is discussed the causes of quarrel, &c. (S. R. 13th December 1589). The same expression occurs in Love's Labour's Lost, i. 2. 184 ; in any case it probably belongs to the revised version of this last named play. The alteration in ii. 4 from ^'to- morrow morning " to " this afternoon," shows that in the revision Shakespeare attended to details in the time of action. 1596. King John was founded on the old play acted by the Queen's men, called The Troublesome Reign of King John. The lines ii. i. 455-460 are imitated in Captain Stukeley by Dekker and others, acted at the Rose, nth December 1596; iii. I. 176-179 refer manifestly to the Pope's bull in 1596, inciting the English to depose Elizabeth ; Chatillon's speech ii. I. 71-75 is most applicable to the great fleet sent against Spain in the same year ; Constance's lamen- tations have been reasonably referred to the death of Hamnet Shakespeare (buried nth August); the Iron Age is alluded to in iv. i. 60, and never else- where in Shakespeare. Now, Heywood's play of that name was on the stage from June 23 to July 16 under the title of Troy. The summer of 1596 is thus undoubtedly the date of Shakespeare's play. SUCCESSION OF HIS PLAYS. 197 There are some indications of the play having been shortened ; Act ii. in the Folio has only seventy-four lines, and Essex has a part of only three lines, although in the older John he appears in five scenes. I think he was meant to be entirely cut out c. 1601 after Essex' execution, and these three lines should be given to Salisbury. The rival play of Stukeley was shortened in the same way ; a whole act was expunged before its publication in 1605. In i. 2 (Folio) the Citizen on the walls is called Hubert ; this indicates that the same actor represented both characters. 1596-7. The Merchant of Venice, or Jew of Venice, was no doubt founded on an old play called The Jew of Venice, by Dekker. It seems, from the title of the German version of this play, that the Jew's name was Joseph. The name Fauconbridge in i. 2 (where Portia's suitors are enumerated, compare Two Gentle- men, i. 2) points to a date soon after John; and the " merry devil " of ii. 3. 2, a phrase never elsewhere used in Shakespeare, indicates contemporaneity with The Merry Devil of Edmonton produced in the winter of 1596. Again, the manifest imitations of this play in Wily Beguiled, which I show elsewhere to date in the summer of 1597, give a posterior T98 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. limit, which must be decisive. This play has no sign whatever of having been altered ; the Clarendon Press guesseS; founded on the discrepancy of the number of suitors (iv. for vi.) are as worthless as Mr. Hales' proof, referred to by Mr. Halliwell (Out- linesj p. 251), of the date of Wily Beguiled. The conclusive evidence of imitation in this play is the conjunction of the '^ In such a night " lines in scene 16, with the ^' My money, my daughter" iterations of Gripe in scene 8 of the same play. On 2 2d July 1598, J. Roberts entered The Merchant or Jew of Venice on S. R., but had to get the Lord Cham- berlain's license before printing. On 28th October 1600, he consented to the entry of the play for T. Hayes ; nevertheless, he issued copies of his own imprint independently. 1597. The First Part of Henry IV, was entered on S. R. 25th February 1598 ; a genuine and authorised imprint. The publication of this play was hurried in order to refute the charge of attacking the Cobham family in the person of Sir John Oldcastle, the original name of the character afterwards called Falstaff (of. " my old lad of the castle," i. 2. 48). Moreover, in i. 2. 182, we find in the text the names Harvey and Russel instead of Peto and Bardolph. SUCCESSION OF HIS PLAYS. 199 The name Russel for Bardolph again occurs in a stage direction in 2 Henry IV. ii. 2. These were evidently originally the names of the characters, and were changed at the same time as that of Old- castle : Russel was the family name of the Bedford Earls, and Ha^yey that of the third husband of Lord Southampton's mother. The new names were picked up from the second part ; in which Lord Bardolph and Peto (a distinct personage from the " humourist " of Part I.) were serious characters. The play was produced in the spring; the only mentions of June in Shakespeare's plays are in ii. 4. 397 [sun F.) ; iii. 2. 75 ; and Anthony^ iii. 10. 14. In ii. 4. 425, Preston's Cambyses is ridiculed (cf. Dreant). There is an imitation of iii. 2. 52 in Lusfs Dominion (the Spanish Moor's Tragedy, by Dekker, Haughton, and Day, February 1600, absurdly quoted by Stokes as Marlowe's). For the " abuses of the time" i. 2. 174; iv. 3. 81 ; see under Sir T. More, 1596. This play, as well as 2 Henry IV. and Henry V, is founded on The Famous Victories of Henry F., an old play produced by the Queen's com- pany ; from which the name Oldcastle was taken. 1597-8. The Second Part of Henry IV. was entered on 5. R. 23d August 1600. This Quarto is much 200 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. abridged in i. 3, ii. 3, iv. I, iv. 4, and a whole scene, iii. i, is omitted. It abounds in oaths appa- rently foisted in by the players, and is apparently printed from a prompter's copy. The omissions arise, I think, from expurgations made by the Master of the Revels. Plays in which rebellion was the subject were especially disagreeable at Court. In the Epilogue there is evidence of altera- tion, the words ^' if my tongue . . . good-night," having been inserted after the first production of the play, as is clear from their succeeding in Q. the clause about praying for the Queen, which must have been final in either version. The newly inserted words contain the allusion to Oldcastle, and show that in this play, as well as the former, that was the original appellation of Falstaff., This is confirmed by the appearance of Old. in a speech prefix in i. 2. 137 ; and Russel in a stage direc- tion in ii. 2. Mr. HaHiwell's notion that Russel and Harvey were names of actors, has not the slightest foundation, nor are such actors known. Note also that in iii. 2. 29, FalstafF is mentioned as having been page to the Duke of Norfolk, which was historically true of Oldcastle (compare the " serving the good Duke of Norfolk " in The Merty Devil. The date of that play is 1597.) The early part i. i, or. ii. 4, was written before the SUCCESSION OF HIS PLAYS. 201 entry of/ Henry IV, on S. R., 25th February 1598, in which Falstaff is mentioned. " Sincklo " occurs in a stage direction in v. I ; he is not known in connection with Shakespeare's company till this play was acted ; he was previously a member of Pembroke's troop, and acted in 3 Henry VI. when it belonged to them along with Humfrey [Jeffes], and Gabriel [Singer]. These two last named, and others, joined the Admiral's company at the Rose in October 1597, when Pembroke's men broke and went into the country. Sinkler, Beeston, Duke, and Pallant, stayed with the Chamberlain's men from c. 1594 till they left the Curtain in 1599, and then Kemp, Duke, Beeston, and Pallant set up a new company under the patronage of the Earl of Derby. Not one of these can be shown to have acted for the Chamberlain's, except between these dates, and that they left in discontent is probable from their being all omitted in the list of the 1623 Folio. Sinkler remained in Shakespeare's company till 1604. Pistol, in his first appearance in ii. 4, does not for a while talk in iambics. Mrs. Quickly (i. 2. 269) appears to be called Ursula (Nell in Henry V. ) For the changes in the names of this and other characters in the series of Falstaff plays, see hereafter in the table given on p. 212. 202 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. 1597- Love's Labour's Lost was published in 1598, "as it was presented before her Highness this last Christmas." This was undoubtedly the earliest of Shakespeare's plays that has come down to us, and was only retouched somewhat hurriedly for this Court performance. The date of original production cannot well be put later than 1589. The characters are in several instances confused. In ii. I Boyet occurs in place of Berowne in the prefixes, and Rosaline for Katharine in the text. In iv. 2, and v. i, there is still greater muddling of Holofernes and Nathaniel ; now one, now the other appears, first as Curate, then as Pedant ; in iv. 2, Berowne is called " one of the strange Queen's Lords," and Queen for Princess occurs in the prefixes through the greater part of the play. It is pretty clear that this lady ambassador was in the 1589 play called Queen. In ii. I, the lines 21-114 were almost certainly added in 1597. They begin with a prefix Prin. inserted in the middle of one of the Queen's (Princess's) speeches ; and in them only throughout the play is the prefix Nav. (Navarre) used for King. In iv. 3, the speech of Berowne (1. 290—365) must be mostly assigned to 1597 ; the repetition of the lines, " From women's SUCCESSION OF HIS PLAYS. 203 eyes . . . Promethean fire " is an unmistakable indication of revision (see the similar instances in Romeo). A like instance of substitution of a long version for a short one, occurs in v. i. 847—879, which are manifestly the 1597 substitute for v. i. 827-832 ; again, v. 2. 575-590 could not have conveyed any amusement in the conceit of '' Ajax " till after the publication of Harrington's Meta- morphosis of Ajax in 1596. The mention of " first and second cause," &c., in i. 2. 171— 192, may imply tliat this was another of the additions. But it is in iv. 2 that the greatest changes have been made. It is clear from v. i. 125, that Sir Holo- fernes was originally the Curate. Modern editors either omit Holofernes or substitute Nathaniel ; Sir Holofernes is also the Curate in iv. 2. 67-156 — ''This is a gift . . . colorable colours." In the rest of this scene Sir Nathaniel is the Curate, and Master Holofernes the Pedant. This latter is the 1597 version. I am not aware that this singular change of character has been noted, or any reason assigned for it, except my conjecture, that it was intended to disguise a personal satire which, however per- tinent in 1589, had become obsolete in 1597. For a full discussion of all these changes made in 1597, see my article on Shakespeare and Puritanism in Anglia, vol. 7. 204 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. 1597-8. Much Ado about Nothing is more likely than any other play to be identical with Lovers Labour^ s Won. The internal evidence has been set forth by Mr. Brae ; but there are points of external evidence also, that have been overlooked. It is very frequent, in old plays, to find days of the week and month mentioned ; and when this is the case, they nearly always correspond to the almanac of the year in which the play was written. Now, in this play alone in Shakespeare is there such a mark of time; comparing i. i. 285, and ii. I. 375, we find that the 6th July came on a Monday ; this suits the years 1590 and 1601, but none between; an indication that the original play was written in 1590. Unlike Love's Labour^ s Lost, it was almost recomposed at its reproduction, and this day-of-the- week mention is, I think, a relic of the original plot, and probably due, not to Shakespeare, but to some coadjutor. Again, Meres' list in his Palladis Tamia consists of the following plays : — Gentlemen of Verona (1595), Errors (1594), Love's Labour^ s Lost (1597), Love' s Labour' s Won (?), Midsummer-Night's Dream (1594-5), Merchant of Venice (1596-7), Richard II. (1595), Richard III. (1594), Henry IV. (1597), King John (1596), Titus Andronicus (1594), SUCCESSION OF HIS PLAYS. 205 Romeo and Juliet (1595-6). The dates I have appended to these may in some instance be slightly erroneous ; but I think no one will deny that the plays mentioned by Meres must have constituted the Shakespeare repertoire of the Chamberlain's men, and have been played by them between the dates of their constitution as a company in 1594, and the publication of Meres' book in 1598. But there is absolutely no other comedy of Shakespeare's that can be assigned to such a date. AlFs Well that Ends Well was certainly not played by his company so early. Again, Cowley and Kempe played the constables in this play; but Kempe had left the company by the summer of 1599- There is no argument against this conclusion yet produced. The main subject of the play had been dramatised before in Ariodante and Geneuora, acted at Court by the Merchant Tailors' boys in 1582-3. The old German play of Jacob Ayrer, The Beautiful Phoenicia (c. 1595, Cohn) also contains points of similarity with Shakespeare's play that are not found in the Bandello novel which Belleforest translated in 1594. Pedro and Leonato are the only names which Shakespeare retains from the novel ; which Ayrer follows in this respect. When the title was altered is doubtful : the play was known as Bene- dick and Beatrice in 161 3. 2o6 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. 1599. Henry V. was acted, with the choruses as we have them in the FoHo, between 15 th April and 28th September, while Essex was in Ireland ; see chorus to Act v. That this was the final revision of the play, I am by no means convinced. The scene with the Scotch and Irish captains, iii. 2. 69 to end, I take to be an insertion for the Court performance, Christmas 1605, to please King James, who had been so annoyed that year by depreciation of the Scots on the stage. That the Quarto copy is printed from an abridged version made for acting purposes, is palpable. By omitting i. i, and sub- stituting one Bishop for two in i. 2 (two being retained in the stage direction) Ely is disposed of; by simple omission and transference of a speech in iv. 3 to Warwick, Westmoreland disappears ; in a similar way Bedford gives place to Clarence ; in iv. 3. 69 Salisbury is replaced by Gloster, and was evidently meant to be in 1. 5-9 of the same scene ; in iv. I Erpingham remains in the stage direction, but has been cut out in the text. That the version from which the Quarto was abridged was the 1599 copy, is a separate question to which I am inclined to say no. I rather hold that it was an earlier one without choruses, and following the Chronicle his- SUCCESSION OF HIS PLAYS. 207 torians much more closely. I cannot otherwise account for the substitution of Gebon for Rambures in iii. 7, and iv. 5 ; and of Bourbon for Britany in iii. 5, and for Dolphin in iii. 7, iv. 5. Mr. Daniel's theory is that the Quarto was later than the Folio version, that is to say, that Shakespeare wrote a play historically incorrect, that his errors were corrected in a stage version before 1600, i.e., while he was still himself an actor ; that the errors were afterwards restored, and have kept the stage ever since. I cannot think this. I believe that the Quarto is (as we have seen in other instances) a shortened version of a play written early in 1598 for the Curtain Theatre, and that the Folio (except such alterations as were made after James's accession) is a version enlarged and improved for the Globe Theatre later in the same year. With regard to this series of Falstaff plays, the following table may be of interest. NAMES OF "IRREGULAR HUMOURISTS" IN- Famous Victories. / Hen. IV., 1 / Hen. IV. 2 Hen. IV. (original (altered (i. i to ii. 4 version). version), i altered). 2 Hen. IV. (ii. 4 to end unaltered). Hen. V. (both versions). Merry Wives. Gadshill. Ned. ' Tom. Oldcastle. Gadshill. Ned Poins. Harvey. Russell. Oldcastle. ? Hostess. Gadshill. Poins. Peto. Bardolph. Falstaff. Quickly. Poins. Peto. Bardolph. Falstaff. Quickly. Bardolph. Falstaff. Pistol. Shallow. Bardolph. F. in text. Pistol. Nym. Bardolph. Falstaff. Quickly. Pistol. Nym. Shallow. 2o8 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. According to my hypothesis, the original names Oldcastle, Ned Poins, Gadshill, &c., were chiefly taken from The Famous Victories of Henry V. ; all these disappear from the series by ii. 4 of 2 Henry IV. : the later names, Bardolph, Falstaff, Nym, Pistol, Shallow, persist to the end of the series, but did not occur in the original forms of / and 2 Henry IV. The name Falstaff was no doubt taken from i Henry VI., in which Shake- speare had been writing on March 1592, and which we know from the Epilogue to Henry V. to have been revived by 1598 at latest. 1599. As You Like It was *' stayed " on the 4th August 1600, and was written after *' Diana in the fountain " (iv. I. 154) was set up in Cheapside in 1598 (Stow). In iii. 5. 83 a line is quoted from Hero and Leander, published in 1598 ; the only instance in which Shakespeare directly refers to a contemporary poet. The date may, I think, be still more exactly fixed from i. 2. 94, " the little wit that fools have was silenced," which alludes probably to the burning of satirical books by public authority ist June 1599. Every indication points to the latter part of 1599 as the date of production. This play is a rival to the Robin Hood plays acted at the Rose in 1598 ; SUCCESSION OF HIS PLAYS. 209 Jaques, "the traveller," seems to, have been the origin of Jonson's Amorphus in CynthtcHs Revels, and Touchstone of Cos the whetstone in the same play ; compare i. 2. 56. The female characters dif- fered considerably in height, as in Much Ado and The Dream, The remarks of Touchstone on quarrels and lies in v. 4 should be compared with Lovers Labour's Lost, i. 2 to end; Romeo and Juliet , ii. 4. 26, &c. The comparison of the world to a stage in ii. 7 suggests a date subsequent to the building of the Globe, with its motto of Totus mundus agit histrionem; and the introduction of a fool proper, in place of a comic clown such as is found in all the anterior comedies, confirms this : the " fools " only occur in plays subsequent to Kempe's leaving the company. The title is taken from Lodge's address prefixed to his Rosalynde, on which the play is founded — " if you like it, so," says Lodge — and it is alluded to in the Epilogue (which, like that to 2 Henry IV., is spoken by a female character), and again by Jonson in the Epilogue to Cynthia^s Revels, which play has much more connection with the present than is usually supposed. There is a tradition that Shakespeare took the part of Adam. 2IO LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. 1600. The Merry Wives of Windsor, as we have it in the FoHo, was probably made for the Court per- formance in February 1600; in i. 4, the "King's English " does not imply that James, not Elizabeth, was on the throne ; but that the time of action is under a king, Henry IV. It was written after Henry V.; perhaps, according to the old tradition, in obedience to the Queen's command, who wished to see Falstaff in love, Shakespeare not having ful- filled his promise in the Epilogue to 2 Henry IV. to introduce him in the Henry V, play ; a failure probably caused by the defection at this date of the actor who had taken this part — Kempe, Beeston, Duke, and Pallant having quitted the King's men between the production of 2 Henry IV. and that of this play. The title. The Merry Wives of Windsor, suggests approximation in subject with The Merry Devil of Edmonton (1597), and so does the great likeness in the characteristics in the Hosts of these plays ; while the plot of the Anne Page story is identical with that of Wily Beguiled (1597), Fenton corresponding to Sophos, Caius to Churms, Simple to Plodall, Evans to R. Goodfellow. It appears from the Quarto edition that Ford's assumed name was originally Brook, not Broome. This was pro- SUCCESSION OF HIS PLAYS. 211 bably altered because Brook was the name of the Lord Cobham, who took offence at the production of Oldcastle on the stage. The song of Marlowe's sung by Evans in iii. i was published as Shake- speare's in the Passionate Pilgrim in 1599; not necessarily by any means in consequence of its previous introduction in this play. Mr. P. A. Daniel has rightly pointed out that iii. 5 is really composed of two scenes, one between Falstaff and Quickly, the other between Falstaff and Ford ; and that the latter ought to begin the fourth Act : he has also shown that in various places the Folio has inconsistencies not explicable without the aid of the Quarto. But all this does not prove any '^ degradation " of the play at " m.anagerial " hands ; it rather indicates hurried and careless production, such as we might expect in a play ordered to be produced in a fortnight, according to the old tradi- tion. Another internal proof of such hurry, both in this play and in Much Ado about Nothings lies in the fact that they are almost entirely in prose ; which is not the case in any other play by Shake- speare. And this brings us to the question of the nature of the Quarto version. It has been held to be merely a first sketch of the play : this theory is untenable. Mr. P. A. Daniel holds it to be a stolen version made up by a literary hack from shorthand 212 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. notes obtained at a representation. This hypothesis gives no explanation of the " cousin-Garmombles " of iii. 5, nor does it enable us to under- stand how no better a representation of the play was issued, nor how whole scenes (that of the fairies for example) appear in quite a different version from the Folio. My own opinion is that the case is parallel to that of Romeo and Juliet; that the Quarto is printed from a partly revised prompter's copy of the older version of the play, which became useless when Shakespeare had made his final version. I believe also that this older version was produced soon after the visit of the Count of Miimplegart (Garmombles) to Windsor in August 1592; that it was probably the Jealous Comedy, acted as a new play by Shakespeare's company 5th January 1593 ; that when Shakespeare revived this old play, he accommodated the char- acters to Henry IV, as best he could. Mr. Daniel's argument that The Merty Wives was a later play than Henry V., because Nym would otherwise have had no title to special mention in the title- page of the Quarto, has not much weight. This Quarto was printed three years after Henry V, was produced, and Nym's reputation from either play was three years old, according to Mr. Daniel himself. Why then should he not be mentioned ? SUCCESSION OF HIS PLAYS. 213 I must add a word on the Fairy scene, v. 5, The fairies are Nan the Queen (in red?), cf. iv. 4. 71 ; Will Cricket (in grey ?) ; two other boys, Bede and Bean, in green and white ; and Evans, Puck Hobgobhn or Robin Goodfellow, in black. The prefixes Qu., Qui, and Ptst. are mistakes for Queen and Puck. Pistol and Quickly cannot be actors in this scene, nor in the entrance are they placed with *' Evans, Anne Page, Fairies," but at the ends of the second and third lines, as if by afterthought. All the Pistol fairy speeches belong to Evans (Puck). There seems to have arisen some confusion in the final revision, when this scene was probably altered. Further confirmation of the original early date of the play may be found in Falstaff's statement that the Thames shore was " shelvy and shallow " (iii. 5. 15); for in 1592 the Thames was so low as to be fordable at London Bridge, and Falstaff was thrown in the ford at Datchet. But the allusions to " three Doctor Faustuses " and Mephis- topheles are not helpful ; Faustus was on the boards till 1597 at least. One of Henry Julius' plays derived from English sources, printed in 1594, The Adulteress, contains the same story as The Merry Wives. If this was not derived from Shakespeare's play, whence was it ? The ground of the English play was probably the story in Tarleton's 214 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. News out of Purgatory (1590)- Note that the other play by Juhus distinctly traceable in origin to the Enghsh stage is Vincentius Ladislaus (1594), in which the similarities to Much Ado (1590), are as marked as in the present instance. We have already seen that Evans acts the part of Robin Goodfellow, and that Will Cricket is another fairy ; but these are two characters in Wily Beguiled^ in which play Robin Goodfellow means Drayton and Will Cricket Kempe. I believe that in Shake- speare's play, Evans and Dr. Caius are satirical representations of Drayton and Lodge. Drayton is introduced as Evan, a Welsh attorney, by Jonson in For the Honour of Wales, and Lodge was frequently satirised on the stage as a French doctor. The part of Falstaff was acted in Charles the First's time by Lowin, and th^re is no reason why he should not have been the original per- former of it in this play as revised. He was twenty-four years old in 1600. 1600. Julius CcBsar is alluded to in Weever's Mirror of Martyrs (Sir John Oldcastle), 1601 ; and the actor of Polonius in Hamlet iii. 2. 109 had pro- bably acted the part of Caesar ; at any rate Ccesar must be anterior to the Quarto Hamlet which was SUCCESSION OF HIS PLAYS. 215 produced in 1601. The structure of this play is remarkable; the first three acts and last two have no characters in common except Brutus, Cassius, Antony, and Lucius ; there are in fact two plays in one, Ccesar^s Tragedy and Ccesar's Revenge. Con- temporary plays by other dramatists were produced in a double pattern : e.g.y Marston's Antonio and Melliday in two parts ; Chapman's Bussy d'Ambots, in two parts ; Kyd's old play of Jeronymo, in two parts. All these were on the stage at the same time a.s Julius Ccesar. Revenge-plays With ghosts in them were the rage for the next four years. That the present play has been greatly shortened, is shown by the singularly large number of instances in which mute characters are on the stage; which is totally at variance with Shakespeare's usual prac- tice. The large number of incomplete Hnes in every possible position, even in the middle of speeches, confirms this. That^ alterations were made we have the positive testimony of Jonson, who in his Discoveries tells us that Shakespeare wrote, " Caesar did never wrong but with just cause " (compare iii. I. 47). That this original reading stood in the acting copies till not long before the 1623 Folio was printed, is clear from the fact that Jonson, in the Induction to his Staple of News (1625), alludes to it as a well-known line requiring no explanation TTXTT-vn 2i6 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. — " Cry you mercy," says Prologue, " you never did wrong but with just cause." This would imply that Shakespeare did not make the alterations himself; a hypothesis confirmed by the spelling of Antony without an h : this name occurs in eight of Shakespeare's plays, and in every instance but this invariably is spelled Anthony. Jonson himself is more likely to have been called on to make this revision than any other author connected with the King's company c. 1622. The ** et tu Brute " about which so much has been written was probably taken from Jonson's Every Man out of his Humour (i. i); it is found in the Duke of York (1595) and elsewhere. Nicholson, in his Acolastus his after wit (S. R. 8th September 1600), probably took it from Shakespeare's play, "Et tu Brute! wilt thou stab Caesar too ? " 1601. AlFs Well that Ends Well manifestly contains pas- sages— i. I. 230-244; I. 3. 130-142; ii. I. 130-214; ii. 3. 80-110, 132-151 ; iii. 4 letter: v. 3 conclud- ing part — which are of very early date ; certainly written not later than 1593. It is not, however, in my opinion, to be identified with Lovers Labour's Won : the allusions to the present title in iv. 4. 35 ; V. I. 24; V. 3. 333, 336, all occur in rhyme SUCCESSION OF HIS PLAYS. 217 passages, and some of them, at least, belong to the earlier date. The play, as we have it, was written after Marston's Jack Drum's Entertainment (1600), to which there is a palpable allusion in iii. 6. 41 ; and before The Dutch Courtesan (probably 1602) by the same author, which contains several allusions to its title. The name Corambus in iv. 3. 185 suggests the same date, as this is the appellation of Polonius in the Quarto Hamlet, The introduction of Violenta, a mute character, in iii. 5, and the substitution of the same name in Twelfth Night, i. 5, for Viola, show that this last-named play was the last written of the two, but not much interval could have occurred between them. In confirma- tion of this approximation of dates, compare the name Capilet, v. 3. 147, 159, with Twelfth Night, iii. 4. 315. In plot this play agrees with Much Ado in the supposed death of Helen, and the promise of Bertram to marry Maudlin Lafeu ; with Measure for Measure, in the substitution of Helen for Diana ; with The Gentlemen of Verona, in Helen's pilgrim disguise, and her meeting with the Hostess. In it and Twelfth Night we find a few slight allusions to the Puritans ; another confirma- tion of date. The only other use even of the word Puritan is in the late play Winter's Tale, iv. 3. 46. Compare the doubtful Pericles, iv. 6. 9. 2i8 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. The way in which the earthquake is mentioned in ^' 3- 9^) gives a still further confirmation. There was an earthquake in London in i6oi. /l take the ^ boasting Parolles to be Marston; born under 1 Mars, muddied in Fortune's displeasure, an ^ egregious coward, an accuser of Captain Dumain j of being lousy, he in all points agrees with Marston, as figured in the other satirical plays of the time. The charge against Dumain is repeated against Jonson in Satiromastix ; Marston had left the Admiral's company in 1599, just before the For- tune Theatre was built for them. His cowardice is dilated on in Jonson's Conversations, and the allusions to him as Jack Drum are frequent in the play. Once we find Tom Drum in v. 2 (from Tom DrunHs Vants in Gentle Craft, 1598), a hint that Thomas Dekker, author of The Shoemaker's Holiday, or The Gentle Craft (1600), was aiding and abetting John Marston in his satirical plays. Helen was acted by a short boy (i. i. 202). The incident of the King's gift to Helen of his ring, only referred to in the last scene, seems to point at the gift of a ring to Essex by Elizabeth in 1 596. Essex was executed in 1601, just before this play was acted. The older parts pointed out above were, I think, incorporated from detached scenes written in 1593 during the plague time, and laid SUCCESSION. OF HIS PLAYS. 219 by for future use. The plot is from Giletta of Narbonne in Painter's Palace of Pleasure^ a book used by Shakespeare in 1594 for his alteration of Edward III, Mr. Stokes says that Eccleston and Gough acted in this play, on the authority of Mr. Halliwell ; one of the many ignes fatui that have misled this unwary compiler. 1601-2. Twelfth Night, or What You Will, was first acted 2d February 1602 at one of the Inns of Court (Manningham's Diary). Its date lies be- tween Marston's Malcontent (1602), (of Malevole in which play Malvolio is clearly a caricature), and What You Will (1602) by the same author. This adoption of the name of his play seems to have induced Shakespeare to replace it by the now uni- versally adopted title. The appellation Rudesby (v. I. 55) is from Chapman's Sir Giles Goosecap (1601). Several minor points have been already noticed under the previous play AlFs Well. In this play, as in that, I believe that earlier written scenes have been incorporated. It is only in similar cases that we find such contradictions as that between the three months' sojourn of Viola at the Count's court (v. i), and the three days' acquaintance with the Duke in i. 4. In ii. 4 there are palpable signs of 220 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. alteration, and iii. i. 159-176, v. i. 133-148 are surely of early date. Moreover, the singular agree- ment of the plot with the Comedy of Errors in the likeness of the twins, and with The Gentlemen of VeronUy or rather with Apollonius and Sylla, whence part of that play was derived, point to a likelihood that the first conceptions of these plays were not far apart in time. I think the early portions were written in 1593, like those of the preceding play. For the change from Duke (i. 1-4) to Count in the rest of the play compare The Gentlemen of Verona. I believe that Sir Toby represents Jonson and Malvolio Marston ; but that subject requires to be treated in a separate work from its complexity. 1602. Troylus and Cressida was published surrepti- tiously in 1609, with an address to the reader stating that it had been ^' never staled with the stage." This statement was withdrawn in the same year, and a new title-page issued, "as it was acted by the King's Majesty's servants at the Globe." It had in fact been entered in S. R. 1603, February 7, by J. Roberts, and licensed for printing, " when he hath gotten sufficient authority for it " — which he evidently did not get. It could not therefore have been produced later than 1602. SUCCESSION OF HIS PLAYS. 221 Nor could it, as we have it, have been earlier ; the line i. 3. 73, *' rank Thersites with his mastic jaws " evidently alluding to Dekker's Sattro-MASTix (1601). I once thought Marston, as Htstriomasttx or TheriomastiXj was alluded to ; but the character of Thersites suits Dekker, not Marston. Jonson describes him in The Poetaster ^ iii. i, as " one of the most overflowing rank wits in Rome ; he will slander any man that breathes if he disgust him." In 1602, Jonson, Marston, and Shakespeare had become reconciled ; of reconciliation with Dekker, at any time, there is no trace. This play is pro- bably the *' purge " given by Shakespeare to Jonson when he put down all those *' of the university pen" {The Return from Parnassus, iv. 3, acted in the winter 1602—3) ; Ajax representing Jonson, Achilles Chapman, and Hector Shakespeare : but whether this conjecture be true or no, Dekker is certainly Thersites. All this part of the play (the camp story) splits off from the love story of Troylus and Cressida, which is of much earlier date, c. 1593. The two parts are discrepant in minor points, notably in the existence of a truce (i. 3. 262), " dull and long- continued " fighting having been abundant in i. 2. The parts written in 1602 are i. 3 ; ii. I ; ii. 2 ; ii. 3 ; iii. 3. 34 to end ; iv. 5. (except lines 12-53) ; v. i ; v. 2 (retains much 222 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. older work ; v. 3. 1-97. All this part bears evident marks of the reading of Chapman's ///afl? i.— vii. (i 598) ; the love story is somewhat from the old Troy book printed by Caxton, but more from Chaucer's Troilus and Cressid, At the end of v. 3, in the Folio v. 10. 32-34, are repeated ; this shows that the 1602 acting copy was meant to end with v. 3, thus making the play a comedy ; as it now stands it is usually classed with the tragedies ; in the Folio, it is placed unpaged between the Histories and Tragedies, and is not mentioned in the ^^Catologue" of contents. The prologue and v. 4-10 contain much work that is unhke Shakespeare's, and are probably by some coadjutor whose other lines have been replaced by the 1602 additions. Hey wood in his Iron Age treated this same subject, and the date of that play is important in this investigation. The Ages of Hey wood were acted before 161 1 (see his Address to the Reader in The Golden Age ; The Iron Age was " publicly acted by two com- panies on one stage at once," and '' at sundry times thronged three several theatres." These were the Rose, the Curtain, and the Bull ; Pembroke's men, and the Admiral's, acted together at the Rose, October to November 1597. This must have been the time when the Iron Age was performed; but not as a new play. It would otherwise have been entered in SUCCESSION OF HIS PLAYS. 223 Henslowe's Diary as such. All the Ages were then probably old in 1597. In 1595—6 we find them accordingly entered by Henslowe under other names ; in 1595; March 5, The Golden Age, whose scenes are in Heaven and Olympus, appears as Steleo(Coelo)and Olempo ; he subsequently writes Seleo for Steleo ; The Silver and Brazen Ages on May 7 and May 23, as the first and second parts of Hercules. These three plays were produced in succession. The entry of Galfrido and Bernardo is a forgery, and a clumsy one, for it necessitates a Sunday performance, which is a thing unknown in Henslowe's Diary, if the dates be properly corrected. On 23d June 1596, Troy was acted, palpably The Iron Age; and on 7th April 1597, Five Plays in One may have been the second part of that play. About February 1599, Heywood left the Admiral's men, and joined Lord Derby's ; in April, Dekker and Chettle pro- duced their Troylus and Cressida; in May their Agamemnon, and Dekker his Orestes^ Furies. I believe that all these were merely enlargements of Heywood's Iron Age. Dekker was a ^' dresser of plays " and a shameless plagiarist ; witness the stealing of Day's work, which he afterwards re- claimed in his Parliament of Bees, At the same time that Dekker was thus pillaging Heywood, his friend Marston was satirising Heywood as Post- 224 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. haste in Histriomastix for appropriating Shake- speare's Troylus (of I593) and bringing out The Prodigal Child, the old Acolastus of 1540, as a new play. There can be no doubt that the company satirised in Histriomastix is Derby's. It was a " travelling " company, newly set up, with a poet who extemporises his plays (Heywood had a share in 220) and uses "No new luxury of blandishment, \ But plenty of Old England's mother's words." The allusion to Troylus, 1. 267-275, in which " he shakes his furious spear," has led some persons to a very absurd identification of Posthaste with Shakespeare. I have noticed before the singular allusion to The Iron Age in John iv. i. 60 (1596). 1603. The Taming of the Shrew is unlike any play hitherto considered ; the Shakespearian part of it being evidently confined to the Katharine and Petruchio scenes — ii. i. 167-326; iii. 2 (except 130-150, 242-254); iv. i; iv. 3; iv. 5 (except three lines at end) ; v. 2 (except ten lines at con- clusion). The construction of the play shows that it was not composed by Shakespeare in conjunction with another author, but that his additions are SUCCESSION OF HIS PLAYS. 225 replacements of the original author's work ; altera- tions made hurriedly for some occasion when it was not thought worth while to write an entirely new play. Such an occasion was the plague year of 1603, when the theatres were closed and the companies had to travel. We shall see, hereafter, that Shakespeare's other similar alterations of other men's work were made in like circumstances. This date is confirmed by the allusions to other taming plays, of which there were several ; the present play, in its altered shape, being probably the latest : ii. I. 297 refers to Patient Grissely by Dekker, Chettle, and Haughton, December 1599; "curst" in ii. I. 187, 294, 307; V. 2. 188, to Dekker's Medicine for a Curst Wife^ July 1602 ; and iv. i. 221 to Hey wood's Woman Killed with Kindness^ March 1603. There is nothing but the supposed inferiority of work to imply an earlier date; and this, on examination, will be seen to be merely a subjective inference arising from the reflex action of the less worthy portion with which Shakespeare's is associated. Rudesby in iii. 2. 10 is from Sir Giles Goosecap (1601), and Baptista, as a man's name, could hardly have come under Shakespeare's notice, when in his Hamlet he made it a woman's. The earlier play thus altered probably dates 1596, when an edition of The Taming of a Shrew was 226 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. reprinted. This last-named play was written for Pembroke's company in 1588-9. Another limit of date is given by the name Sincklo in the Induction. Sinklo was an actor with the Chamberlain's men, from 1597 to 1604. Nicke in iv. i. is Nicholas Tooley. The play is not mentioned by Meres in 1 598. In the Induction, *' The Slys are no rogues : we came in with Richard Conqueror," is, I think, an allusion to the stage history of the time. Sly and Richard the Third (Burbadge) came into Lord Strange's 'company together in 159 1. In the Pem- broke play, Don Christophero Sly was probably acted by Christopher Beeston. The Induction, partly revised by Shakespeare, seems to have been clumsily fitted by the players (as, indeed, the whole play is, especially in the non-appearance of " my cousin Ferdinand," iv. I. 154, whose place seems to be taken by Hortensio) : surely Sly ought to have been replaced, as in the 1588 play; and is it pos- sible that Shakespeare even in a farce should have made Sly talk blank verse, sc. 2, 1. 60—120? The Taming of a Shrew, as acted in June 1594 at Newington Butts, was the old play which had belonged to Pembroke's men, probably by Kyd ; but the first version of the play, afterwards altered by Shakespeare, was written, I think, by Lodge, (? aided by Drayton in the Induction). This SUCCESSION OF HIS PLAYS. 227 Induction was, I think, greatly altered by Shake- speare in 1603. 1603. Hamlet is extant in three forms — the Folio, which is evidently a stage copy considerably shortened for acting purposes ; the 1604 Quarto, which is a very fair transcript of the author's complete copy, with a few omissions ; and the 1603 Quarto, im- perfect and inaccurate. The date of the perfect play is certainly 1603. In ii. 2. 346, &c., we find that the tragedians of the city — i.e.y Shakespeare's company — are "travelling," and that "their inhibition comes of the late innovation." This has been inter- preted in various ways, the most absurd being that which regards the establishment of the Revels children in 1604 as the innovation : hardly less so is Malone's notion that the putting down of the Curtain players in 1600 is the inhibition referred to. The Globe company travelled in 1 601 in consequence of Essex' attempt at political innovation, and their acting Richard II. in connection therewith ; they travelled again in 1603, the theatres being shut because of the plague : this latter is the time re- ferred to in the final version, for in the latter part of that year the Puritan party had by millenary petitions at Hampton Court conferences, and so 228 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. forth, attempted a religious "innovation;" and their anxiety to avoid this charge is evident in their continual protests that it was a reformation, not an innovation, that they wanted (see Fuller, Church History, under 1603-4 passim). The imme- diately succeeding passage, 1. 35i-379» however, which also occurs in the earlier version, distinctly points to 1601. The *^ berattling of the common stages by the aery of little eyases," the controversy between poet and player, ended in that year ; these lines are not contained in the second Quarto. The words '^if they should grow themselves to common players," indicate a possible date of writing c. 1 6 10, when Ostler and Underwood, Chapel boys in 1 60 1, had grown up and been taken into the King's men ; but the use of the present tense in the preceding paragraph shows that the same Chapel children who had been engaged in the Jonson and Marston quarrel were still on the stage, and that the date of writing is anterior to their replacement by the Revels boys in January 1604. The growing to common players then must be taken generally, not specifically ; unless we suppose a still further revision c. 16 10, which on other grounds is not unlikely. It may be worth noting that the play of Dido, in rivalry of which the player's speech in ii. 2 is recited, belonged to these same Chapel SUCCESSION OF HIS PLAYS. 229 children. In like manner the Pyrgus in Jonson's Poetaster recites bits of The Battle of Alcazar in rivalry with Dekker's Captain Stukeley, But although the date of the perfect play is almost certainly 1603, Hamlet had certainly been on the stage some years at that time. Tucca in Satiromastix (1601) says, "My name's Hamlet Revengey^ and he comes on, " his boy after him, with two pictures under his cloak." In Marston's Malcontent (1601), '^ Illo, ho, ho, ho ! art thou there, old Truepenny ? " must refer to Hamlet. In iii. 2. 42, " Let those that play your clowns speak no more than is set down for them," refers, I think, to extemporising Kempe, who left Shakespeare's company in 1599. Florio's Montaigne y which is implicitly referred to throughout the play (see Mr. Feis, Shakespeare and Montaigne^ 1884), was entered S. R. 4th June 1600. On the title-page of the first Quarto it is said that the play had been acted in the Universities of Oxford and Cambridge and elsewhere ; />., in the travelling of 1 60 1. It is pretty clear, then, that 1 60 1 was the date of its production. Polonius (iii. 2. 108) had already played Julius Caesar in the University^ which could hardly have been before 1601 ; and Hamlet was entered by Roberts 26th July 1602, in S. R., "as it was lately acted." Plays thus produced during " travels," were almost 230 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. always hurried and careless performances ; indeed, this form of Hamlet seems to have been an un- finished refashioning of the old play by Kyd, that had so long been performed by the Chamberlain's men. The names Corambis and Montano for Polonius and Reynaldo, and a good deal of Acts iii. and iv., seem to be remnants of this old play. The name Corambus is found in the German ver- sion, which probably dates c. 1592. It also occurs in AWs Welly iv. 3. 185. The first Quarto is in this instance, as in those of Romeo, Henry V., and Merry Wives, in my opinion, printed from a partly revised prompter's copy of the 1601 play, which became useless when the fuller version was made. In this instance there are traces of alterations having been made on this copy similar to that in Romeo, iii. 5. 177. The usual explanation of the peculiar text of imperfect Quartos is, that notes were taken in shorthand at the theatre, which, eked out by the vampings of some playdresser, made up a saleable version, however incorrect. The strong- hold of this theory is the soliloquy in iii. I. 56, &c. The minor errors of " right done " for " write down," i. 2. 222 ; " invenom'd speech " for '^ in venom steept," ii. 2. 533; " honor " for ^^ owner," V. I. 121 ; and the like, can be easily paralleled in the most authentic copies of printed plays of the SUCCESSION OF HIS PLAYS. 231 period. But a careful examination of the text of that speech of Hamlet's in the first Quarto, shows that its present meaningless shape arises from the dis- placement of two lines only, an error which is most unlikely to have occurred in shorthand notes, and is completely subversive of the hack play-writing botcher hypothesis. I append this sohloquy, as I suppose it to have stood in the MS. of the prompter's copy, after the partial 1 601 correction : " To be, or not to be ? Ay, there's the point. To die — to sleep — is that all ? Ay. All ? No. To sleep — to dream — ay, marry, there it goes. 4> For in that dream of death when we, awake, I -gj Are doomed before an everlasting Judge, "^ ^ r^ The happy smile and the accurst are damn'd. J 3 But for the joyful hope of this, who'ld bear ^ ^ The scorns and flattery of the world, the right 2 > Scom'd by the rich, the rich curst of the poor, >» ij The widow being opprest, the orphan wrong'd, § g The taste of hunger, or a tyrant's reign, O fi " rt And thousand more calamities besides, ""^ o When that he may his full quietus make g J With a bare bodkin 1 Who would this endure, ^ "^ But for a hope of something after death, ^ "^ The tmdiscover'd country^ from whose bourne "^ No passenger has e'er returned? Ay that Puzzles the brain and doth confound the sense ; Which makes us rather bear the ills we have, Than fly to others that we know not of. This conscience makes cowards of us all." 232 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. I have put in italics in the text the marginal cor- rections of *' proof " as shown above, inserted in their proper places; a comparison with the first Quarto will show how the printer, not the short- hand man or playdresser, by inserting them in the wrong places, has produced the nonsense that has caused so many groundless hypotheses. " When we awake, And borne before an everlasting Judge, From whence no passenger ever returtCd The undiscovered country^ at whose sight The happy smile," &c. And farther on : " Ay that O this conscience," &c. The erroneous notions with regard to these imperfect Quartos arise, in a great measure, from their being compared with the carefully edited later versions ; were they also edited and emended the differences would appear much smaller than they do now. The earlier (1601) form of this play was evidently hurriedly prepared during the journey to Scotland, in which the company visited the universities, at a time when the public taste for revenge-plays had been revived by the reproduc- tion of Kyd's Jeronymo (Spanish Tragedy) by the SUCCESSION OF HIS PLAYS. 233 Chapel children, probably at Jonson's suggestion ; a new version of Kyd's Hamlet naturally followed. Other such plays were : Marston's Antonio and Mellida (Paul's, 1599— 1600); Shakespeare's /«//«s Ccesar (1600) ; Chettle and Hey wood's Hoffman^ or Revenge for a Father, also called Like quits Like (Admiral's, January 1603) : Chapman's Revenge of Bussy is of later date. A passage in Ram Alley (c. 1609), V. I, " The custom of thy sin so lulls thy sense," &c., is apparently imitated from iii. 4. 161, &c., a passage not found in the Folio. This would lead to the conjecture that the Folio abridg- ment was made after 1609; on the other hand, the re-insertion in it of ii. 2. 350-379 points to a date, about 1 6 10, when Underwood and Ostler had ^' grown to common players," and were admitted among the King's men. It was probably made then by Shakespeare himself. It is indeed most unlikely, that were it not so, its text should have been preferred, by the editors of the Folio, to the fuller one of the Quarto, which lay ready printed to their hands. We have, then, in the forms of this play, an example of Shakespeare's hurried revision of the work of an earlier writer, but it must be remembered in a most mutilated form ; of the full working out of his own conception, in the shape fittest for private reading ; and finally, of his 234 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. practical adaptation of it to the requirements of the stage. The date of the printing of the first Quarto, and, therefore, of the revision made in the second, is after 19th May 1603, as the actors are called "King's servants" in the title-page. I. i. 107—125, which surely allude to the death of Elizabeth, are omitted in the Folio. In iii. 2. 177, iv. 5. "JJy alternative readings — / " For women fear too much even as they love ". ( " And women's fear and love hold quantity,"^ r <* And now behold " t " O Gertrard, Gertrard " — are printed side by side, a sure mark of revision. 1604. Measure for Measure was written, in my opinion, in rivalry to Marston's The Fawn^ which was printed March 1606, but produced 1603-4. It was also subsequent to Chettle and Heywood's Like quits Like, 14th January 1603 ; v. i. 416. All the allusions in it suit 1604. The avoidance of publicity by James I. (i. i. 68-71 ; ii. 4. 27-30) ; the existing war and expected peace (i. 2. 4, 83) ; the stabbers — four out of ten prisoners — in iv. 3 ; the stuffed hose, to which Pompey's name SUCCESSION OF HIS PLAYS. 235 is appropriate, all agree in this ; peace was con- cluded in the autumn ; the " Act of Stabbing " was passed in this year, the bombasted breeches revived with the new reign. But these are more valuable in showing what reliance can be placed on such allusions than in fixing the date of the play ; for it was acted at Court, 26th December 1604. The title was probably taken from a line in j Henry Vl.y ii. 6. 55 ; the plot is like All's Well in the substitution of Mariana, Twelfth Night in the Duke's love declaration at the end. It is founded on Whetstone's Promos and Cassandra (1582). An order was made in 1603, that no new houses should be built in the suburbs of London. Com- pare i. 2. 104. 1604. Othello was acted at Court ist November 1604, being, no doubt, like Measure for Measure^ 26th December, a new play that year. The Merry WtveSy 4th November, and Henry V., 7th January, were revised for the same Revels. The Errors, 28th December, Lovers Labour's Lost, between New Year and Twelfth Day, and The Merchant of Venice, January 10, 12, were also reproduced. The docu- ment in the Record Office containing these details is a modern forgery, but Malone possessed a 236 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. transcript of the genuine entry in the Revels accounts. It was a bold thing for Shakespeare to have performed before James I. in two plays on unfounded jealousy, at a time when the King was so jealous of the relations of the Queen with Lord Southampton. The 1622 Quarto copy of this play is abridged for stage reasons ; by whom we can- not say. The allusion to the "huge eclipse" (v. 2. 99), points to the total eclipse of 2d October 1605. Shakespeare had probably been reading Harvey's Discoursive Problem concerning Prophesies (1588), in which he speaks of '* a huge fearful eclipse of the sun " as to happen on that day. The likeness of this play in small details to Measure for Measure indicates close contemporaneity of date, e.g., the name Angelo (i. 3. 16); the word "grange" (i. i. 106), and " seeming " (iii. 3. 209). This play was again acted at Court in 161 3. It was founded on Cinthio's novel Hecatomithi, Third Decad, Novel 3. The "men whose heads do grow beneath their shoulders" (i. 3. 145) came from Raleigh's narra- tive of The Discovery of Guyana (1600). He was " resolved " of their credibihty. In The Patient Man, by Dekker, S. R. 9th November 1604, there is a distinct reference to Othello — " Thou kill'st her now again, And art more savage than a barbarous Moor " (i. i). SUCCESSION OF HIS PLAYS. 237 1605. King Lear was probably on the stage when the old play of Leir on which it was founded was published. This latter was entered on S. R. 8th May, as " The Tragical History of King Leir and his three daughters, as it was lately acted," but was published as " The true Chronicle History of King Leir and his three daughters, &c., as it hath been divers and sundry times lately acted." It is not tragical in any sense, and ends happily. Shakespeare was the first person who, in opposition to the chronicles, made a tragedy on this story. There can be no doubt that Stafford, the publisher, meant to pass the old play as Shakespeare's ; the last trace we have of it on the stage is in April 1594, when it was acted at the Rose by the Queen's and Sussex' men, who almost immediately afterwards broke up. That Shakespeare's play remained on the stage till the end of 1605 is evident from the words " these late eclipses " (i. 2. 112) which clearly refer to the huge eclipse of the sun in October 1605, and the immediately pre- ceding eclipse of the moon in September. The word " late " could not be used, whether in the original text or by subsequent insertion, till October. That Shakespeare had been probably reading 238 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. Harvey on the subject I have noticed under the preceding play, to which the present is every way closely allied. Compare, for instance, the characters of lago and Edmund. The Quarto of 1608, entered S. R. 26th November 1607 as acted at Whitehall St. Stephen's Day, t.e.^ 26th December 1606, is abridged and slightly altered for Court representa- tion and carelessly printed ; the Folio is, on the other hand, somewhat shortened for the public stage. The names of the spirits in iii. 4 are from Harsnett's Declaration of Egregious Popish Impos- tures. The two lines at the end of Act i. and the MerHn's Prophecy (iii. 2. 79-95) are not in Shake- speare's [manner ; they are mere gag, inserted by the Fool-actor to raise a laugh among the ground- lings. The story of Gloster and his sons is pro- bably founded on Sidney's Arcadia^ ii. 133-138, ed. 1598. 1606. Macbeth, as we have it, is abridged for the stage in an unusual degree. Nevertheless it contains one scene, iii. 5, and a few lines, iv. i. 39-43, which are not by Shakespeare. The character of Hecate, and the songs in these passages (Black spirits and white, and Come away), are from Middleton's Witch, acted 1621-22. The insertions in Macbeth must have SUCCESSION OF HIS PLAYS. 239 been made in 1622 ; they were probably merely intended to introduce a little singing and music then popular ; and music has ever since been an essential ingredient in the stage representations. Omitting these forty lines, we have ample evidence of the date of the play as Shakespeare left it. In the Porter's speech, ii. 3. 1-23, 26-46, the *' expectation of plenty " refers to the abundance of corn in 1606 ; the allusions to equivocation cer- tainly allude to the trial of Garnet and other Jesuits in the spring of that year : the *' stealing out of a French hose" agrees with the short and strait fashion then in vogue, when ^' the tailors took more than enough for the new fashion sake " (A. Nixon's Black Year, 1606) ; the touching for the King's evil, iv. 3. 140—159, implies that James was on the throne. Camden, in his Remains (1605), a book certainly known to Shakespeare, refers to it as a "gift hereditary." The " double balls and treble sceptres " in iv. I. 119— 122, necessitate a time of writing subse- quent to 24th October 1604, when the constitution was changed. The applicabiHty of the circumstances of the play to the Gowry conspiracy would be especially pleasing to James, and the predictions of the weyward sisters had already been presented to the King at Oxford in Latin in 1605. Warner added an account of Macbeth to his new edition of 240 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. Albion's England in 1606, but the absolute argu- ment against this being a new play when Forman saw it performed 20th April 1 6 10, lies in the dis- tinct allusion in The Puritan by Middleton, acted 1606 — " instead of a jester, we'll ha' th' ghost in a white sheet sit at upper end o' th' table." This was Shakespeare's first play without a jester, and Banquo's ghost sits in Macbeth's place at the upper end. There is little doubt that Malone was right in assigning the visit of the King of Denmark in July and August 1606 as the occasion for the production of this play at Court. But was this the date of its first production on the stage ? All the evidences for it are gathered from ii. 3. 1—23, 26-46; iv. I. 1 19-122; iv. 3. 140-159; everyone of which passages bears evident marks of being an addition to the original text. The description of Cawdor's death is remarkably like that of the Earl of Essex in Stow (by Howes, p. 793), who minutely describes " his asking the Queen's forgiveness, his confession, repentance, and concern about behaving with propriety on the scaffold." Steevens (ii. 4) reminds us of corresponding passages in Hamlet and Ccesar, to which plays Macbeth is throughout more closely allied than to Lear or Timon. The references to Antony, i. 3. 84, iii. I. 57, are just what might be expected from one who had recently SUCCESSION OF HIS PLAYS. 241 read Plutarch's life of Antony for writing Julius Ccesar. Shakespeare's company were in Scotland in 1 60 1, and were appointed the King's Servants; Laurence Fletcher being admitted burgess of the guild of the borough of Aberdeen, 22d October 1 60 1. This, I think, is the date of production of Macbeth on the stage, 1 606 being that of the revised play at Court. But there are traces of a still earlier play. In 1596, August 27, there is, says Mr. Collier, an entry in S. R. (I sup- pose in that portion relating to fines, &c., which Mr. Arber has not been allowed to reprint) referring to two ballads, one on Macdobeth, the other on The Taming of a Shrew. Kempe, in his Dance from London to Norwich (1600), refers to this ballad as made by '' a penny poet whose first making was the miserable stolen story of Mac-do-el or MaC'do'beth or Mac somewhat, for I am sure a Mac it was, though I never had the maw to see it ; " he bids the writer " leave writing these beastly ballads ; make not good wenches prophetesses, for little or no profit." This ballad was in all probability founded on a play, as its companion was; a play probably written some year or two before. That Shakespeare had some connection with this early play, is rendered probable by iv. I. 94—101, in which Dunsin'ane is accented in Q 242 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. the southern manner ; in the rest of the play it is always, as in Scotland, Dunsina'ne. This passage, in which Macbeth speaks of himself in the third person, and rhymes in a manner which strongly reminds us of the pre-Shakespearian stage, sug- gests that the old play of c. 1593-4 was used by Shakespeare in making his 1601 version. I may ask the reader who doubts the remarkable altera- tions to which this play has been subjected, to examine the following incomplete lines at points where compression by omission seems to have taken place, i. 3. 103 ; i. 4. 35 ; ii. i. 16; ii. i. 24; ii. 3. 120; iii. 2. 155; iv. 3. 15; and to compare the later alterations by Davenant and others, as given in my article in Anglia, vol. vii. 1606-7. Timon of Athens unquestionably contains much matter from another hand. The Shakespearian part is so like Lear in matter, and Anthony and Cleopatra in metre, that the conjectural date here assigned to it cannot be far wrong. It was founded on the passage in North's Plutarch (Life of Antony)^ and perhaps on the' story as told in Painter's Palace of Pleasure, with a hint or two from Lucian's Dialogues (? at second hand ; no translation of that time is known). It would be out of proportion in SUCCESSION OF HIS PLAYS. 243 this work to reproduce my 1868 essay on the authorship, which awaits some slight corrections from recent investigation. It will be found in the New Shakspere Society's Transactions for 1874. I can only here point out the parts that are certainly not Shakespeare's, namely, ii. i ; ii. 2. 194-204 ; iii. I ; iii. 2 ; iii. 3 ; iii. 4 (in great part) ; iii. 5; iii. 6. 1 16-13 1; iv. 2; iv. 3. 70-74, 103- 106, 464-545; V. i. 157; V. 3. Delius and Elze say the second author was George Wilkins. Perhaps so ; but they are certainly wrong in regarding the play as an alteration made by Shake- speare of another man's work. Whether Wilkins completed the unfinished sketch by Shakespeare, or the actors eked it out with matter taken from a previous play by him, I cannot tell : but Shake- speare's part is a whole totus teres atque rotundus. There is no trace of his ever working in conjunc- tion with any author after 1594, although in this play, in The Shrew, and Pericles there is evidence of his writing portions of dramas which were fitted into the work of other men. Wilkins left the King's men in 1607 and wrote for the Queen's. This migration to an inferior company is so unusual as to indicate some rupture on unfriendly terms. Perhaps the insertion of Shakespeare's w^ork in his play offended him. The unShakespearian characters in the play 244 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. are three Lords — Lucius, Lucullus, and Sem- pronius ; three Servants — Flavins (Steward always in the Shakespeare part), Flaminius, and Servilius ; three Strangers; three Creditors — Hortensius, Philotus, and 2d Varro ; three Masquers ; and the Soldier. I have not here assigned to Wrlkins all parts of the play that have been suspected, but only those with regard to which the evidence is definite, with entire exclusion of merely sesthetic opinion. 1607. Anthony and Cleopatra was entered on S. R. 20th May 1608 ; and no doubt was written not much more than a year before that date. Where- ever we find plays entered but not printed in their author's lifetime, it is pretty safe to conclude that they were then still on the stage : compare, for Shakespeare, the instances of The Merchant of Venice^ Troylus and Cressida^ and As You Like it. 1608. Coriolanus in all probability was produced not long after Anthony. There is no external evidence available. Both these Roman plays are founded on North's Plutarch. SUCCESSION OF HIS PLAYS. 245 1608. Pericles as we now have it was probably on the stage in 1608, when Wilkins published his prose version of ^' the play, as it was lately pre- sented by the worthy and ancient poet John Gower." He was probably annoyed by the adop- tion of Shakespeare's version of the Marina story in place of his own. The rest of the play as it stands — i.e.^ Acts i. ii. and Gower chorus to Act iii. — are by Wilkins, in whose novel the only distinctly traceable piece of Shakespeare's is from iii. I. 28- 31, which is repeated almost verbatim. The play was published in 1609, probably as an answer to Wilkins ; whose unaltered play must have been on the stage as early as 1606, seeing that The Puritan, acted that year, contains a distinct parody of the scene of Thaisa's recovery. This original form of the play was founded on Gower's Con/essio Amantis and Twine's novel of Prince ApolloniuSy which was probably, in consequence of the popu- larity of the play, reprinted in 1607. It was, I think, this Wilkins' play that was entered in S. R. along with Anthony and Cleopatra 20th May 1608, and the publication of which was stayed. There is no trace of any transfer of Blount's interest as so entered to Gosson, who published the altered play. 246 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. To the popularity of this drama there are many allusions, notably one in PimlicOy or Run Redcap (1609). 1609. Cymheline was probably produced after the Roman plays and before Wintet's Tale; and the lachimo part was doubtless then written. There is, however,^strong internal evidence^ that the part derived from Holinshed, viz., the story of Cymbeline and his sons, the tribute, &c., in the last three acts, was written at an earlier time, in 1606 I think, just after Lear and Macbeth y for which the same chroni- cler had been used. All this older work will be found in the scenes in which Lucius and Bellarius enter. A marked instance in the change of treat- ment will be found in the character of Cloten. In the later version he is a mere fool (see i. 3 ; ii. i) ; but in the earlier parts he is by no means deficient in manliness, and the lack of his '' counsel " is regretted by the King in iv. 3. Especially should iii. 5 be examined from this point of view, in which the prose part is a subsequent insertion, having some slight discrepancies with the older parts of the scene. Philastery which contains some passages suggested by this play, was'written in 161 1. The lachimo story is found in Boccaccio's Decameron^ SUCCESSION OF HIS PLAYS. 247 Day II, Novel 9. The verse of the vision, v. 4. 30-122, is palpably by an inferior hand, and was probably inserted for some Court performance after Shakespeare had left the stage. Of course the stage directions for the dumb show are genuine. This would not have been worth mentioning but for the silly arguments of some who defend the Shake- spearian authorship of these lines, and maintain that the play would be maimed without them. Forman saw this play acted c. 1610— 11 ; which gives our only posterior limit of date. 1610. The Wintef^s Tale was founded on Greene's Dorastus and Fawnia ; it was still on the stage when Dr. S. Forman saw it, 15 th May 161 1 ; but this gives only a posterior limit. Sir H. Herbert mentions it as an old play allowed by Sir G. Buck. But Buck, although not strictly Master of the Revels till August 1 6 10, had full power to "allow" plays from 1607 onwards. We are, after all, left in great measure to internal evidence. One really helpful fact is that Jonson in Bartholomew Fair links it with The Tempest : "If there be never a servant monster in the Fair who can help it ? nor a nest of antics ? He is loth to make nature afraid in his plays like 248 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. those that beget Tales, TempestSy and such hke drolleries." This was written in 1614, and at that date he would of course allude to the latest pro- ductions of Shakespeare, if to any. This allusion occurs in a play written for a rival company, the Princess Elizabeth's. In his Conversations with Drummond, Jon son again refers to this play apropos of Bohemia having no sea-coast. I suspect that the Bear was a success in Mucedorus, and therefore revived in this play. 1 6 10. The Tempest was shown by Malone to contain many particulars derived from Jourdan's narrative, 13th October 16 10, A Discovery of the Bermudas , otherwise called the Isle of Devils; by Sir Thomas Gates, Sir George Somers, and Captain Newport, with divers others. He is not equally successful in showing that Shakespeare used 77?^ True Declara- tion of the Colony of Virginia, S. R. 8th November 1 610, in which the reference to The Tempest as a '* Tragical Comedy " seems to me to show that the play was already on the stage. It does not follow that because the October pamphlet was used in the storm scenes, that none of the play was written before that month; but that the date of SUCCESSION OF HIS PLAYS. 249 its first appearance was in October to November 1 6 10, I have little doubt. Gonzalo's description of his ideal republic is from Florio's Montaigne. The play as we have it is evidently abridged ; one character, the son of Anthonio the Duke of Milan, i. 2. 438, has entirely disappeared, unless the eleven lines assigned to Francisco are the debris of his part. The lines forming the Masque in iv. I are palpably an addition, probably made by Beaumont for the Court performance before the Prince, the Princess EHzabeth, and the Palatine in 1 61 2— 13 ; or else before the King on ist November 1 61 2 {The Winter'' s Tale being acted on 5th November). This addition consists only of the heroics, 11. 60-105, 129-138; the mythological personages in the original play having acted in dumb show. In the stage directions (1. 72) of the dumb show ^' Juno descends ; " in the text of the added verse 1. 102, she '^ comes," and Ceres '^ knows her by her gait." This and the preceding were surely Shakespeare's last plays ; compare Prospero's speech, v. I. 50, &c., and the Epilogue. He began his career with the Chamberlain's com- pany (after his seven years' apprenticeship in conjunction with others, 1587-94), with a Mid- summer Dream, he finishes with a Winter's Tale ; and so his playwright's work is rounded ; twenty- 250 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. four years, each year an hour in the brief day of work, and then the rounding with a sleep. "^^ 1613. Henry VIII. as we have it is not the play that was in action at the Globe when that theatre was burned on Tuesday, 29th June 161 3. Howes (Stow, Chronicles, p. 1003) says, ^^ By negligent discharg- ing of a peal of ordnance, close to the South side thereof the Thatch took fire, and the wind suddenly disperst the flame round about, and in a very short space the whole building was quite consumed and no man hurt ; the house being filled with people, to behold the play, viz., of Henry the Eight r A letter from Thomas Lorkin to Sir Thomas Pucker- ing, 30th June 161 3, and another from John Chamberlain to Sir Ralph Winwood, 8th July 161 3 (Winwood's Memorials, iii. 469), give similar accounts. Sir Henry Wotton (Reliquice, p. 475), * Compare with this Masque, tliat by Beaumont written for the Inner Temple, 1613. 1. " Thy banks with pioned and twilled brims " ( Tempest). "Bordered with sedges and water flowers" {Inner Temple Masque). " Naiades with sedged crowns " ( Tempest), 2. " Blessing . . . and increasing " ( Tempest). " Blessing and increase " ( Inner Temple Masqtu). 3. The main part played by Iris in both. 4. The dance of the Naiads in both. Many of the properties could be utilised in both performances. SUCCESSION OF HIS PLAYS. 251 in a letter of 2d July 161 3, says it was at " a new play acted by the King's players at the Bankside, called All is True, representing some principal pieces of the reign of Henry the Eighth." The title " All is True " is clearly alluded to in the Prologue, 11. 9, 18, 21 ; but the same Prologue shows that the extant play was performed as a new one at Blackfriars, for the price of entrance, a " shilling," 1. 12, and the address to '^ the first and happiest hearers of the town," 1. 24, are only applicable to the *' private house " in Blackfriars ; the entrance to the Globe was twopence, and the audience at this '' public house " of a much lower class. This play is chiefly by Fletcher and Mas- singer, Shakespeare's share in it being only i. 2 ; ii. 3 ; ii. 4 ; while Massinger wrote i. i ; iii. 2. 1-193 ) V. I. It was not, however, written by these authors in conjunction. Shakespeare appears to have left it unfinished ; his part is more like The Winter's Tale than any other play, and was pro- bably written just before that comedy in 1609, during the prevalence of the plague. I have before noted the disturbing effect of these plague times, with the concomitant closing of the theatres, &c., on Shakespeare's regular habits of composition. This play is founded on Holinshed's Chronicle and Fox's Christian Martyrs (1563). It is worth noting 252 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. that its success called forth new editions of S. Rowley's When you see me you know me, and the Lord Cromwell of W. S. in this year ; both plays on Henry the Eighth's times. On the authorship question see Mr. Spedding's Essay in The Gentle- man^ s Magazine, August 1850, Mr. Boyle's Essay and my own letter in the Athenceum. That the 161 3 play (probably finished by Fletcher, and destroyed in great part in the Globe fire) was not that now extant is certain, for in a contemporary ballad on the burning of the Globe we are told that the "riprobates prayed for the fool," and there is no fool in Henry VIII, The extant play was produced by Fletcher and Massinger in 161 7. 1625. The Two Noble Kinsmen was published in 1634, as written by Fletcher and Shakespeare. There is no other evidence that Shakespeare had any hand in it, except the opinions of Lamb, Coleridge, Spalding, Dyce, &c. These, on analysis, simply reiterate the old argument, " It is too good for any one else." Hazlitt and Hallam held, notwithstand- ing, the opposite opinion. I have myself shown in The Literary World, loth February 1883 (Boston), that the play was first acted in 1625. It was printed from a playhouse MS., with stage direc- SUCCESSION OF HIS PLAYS. 253 tions, such as i. 3 : "2 Hearses ready with Pala- mon and Arcite; the 3 Queens. Theseus and his Lords ready ; " and in iii. 5 : " Knock for Schoole." But in iv. 2, we find an actor named Curtis taking the part of Messenger. No actor of that name is known except Curtis Greville, who joined the King's men between 1622, when he be- longed to the Palsgrave's, and October 1626, when he performed in Massinger's Roman Actor. More- over, the Prologue tells us this was a new play performed in a time of losses, and in anticipation of leaving London. The company did leave London in 1624, after their trouble in August about Middle- ton's Game of Chess. On this occasion they tra- velled in the north, and performed at Skipton three times for £'^ ; and again, in July 1625 they travelled, on account of the plague in London ; where they ceased to perform in May, when the deaths from fhat disease exceeded forty per week. Greville probably joined the King's men on the breaking up of the Palsgrave's, of whom the last notice dates 3d November 1624. This gives Easter 1625 as the likeliest date for the play. But whether in 1624 or 1625 (and it must be one of these years) it was first acted, the advocates of Shakespeare's part-authorship are now reduced to the hypothesis that a play begun by Shakespeare 254 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. ' was left unnoticed for some dozen years, although a similarly unfinished play had been finished and acted twelve seasons before, and a collected edition of Shakespeare's works had been issued in the interim, in which had been included every avail- able portion of his writings.'"'' I cannot believe this; nor can I think that if Shakespeare were really concerned in this play it would have been put forth in 1625 with so modest a Prologue. This might have suited while he lived, but nine years after his death, and two years after his collected works had been published, it is incredible. With the highest respect then for the eminent aesthetic critics who hold that Shakespeare did write part of this play, I must withdraw my adhesion, and state my present opinion that there is nothing in it above the reach of Massinger and Fletcher, but that some things in it (ii. la; iv. 3) are unworthy of either, and more likely to be by some inferior hand, W, Rowley for instance. The popular instinct has always been on this side ; editions containing this play have not been sought after ; and had it not been known not to have been Shakespeare's, it would surely have been gathered up with the W. S. plays in the FoHo of* 1663. * Pericles and Edward III. are no exceptions to this statement j the copyrights of both belonged to other publishers, and were retained by thess after the Folio was issued. ( 355 ) SECTION V. ON THE MARLOWE GROUP OF PLAYS, / Henry VI. was acted as a new play at the Rose by Lord Strange's men 3d March 1592. It is evidently written by several hands. No success- ful attempt has yet been made to discriminate these ; yet it will be found that on this discrimina- tion depends the elucidation of so many difficult circumstances of Shakespeare's early career, that no apology is required for giving to this play an amount of consideration which it would not deserve on account of its intrinsic merits. It is convenient to commence our investigation by a brief summary of the historical parts contained in the play. A 1422, August 31. Henry VI. succeeded to the throne at "nine months old." A 1422, November 7. Henry V. was buried at West- minster (i. i). A 1425. Gloster was refused admission to the Tower (i- 3). 256 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. A 1425, January 19. The Earl of March died at lyim, leaving Richard Plantagenet his heir. [This Edmund Mortimer was not imprisoned in the Tower, as in the play; but his uncle, Sir John Mortimer, was so, who was executed shortly before.] (ii- S-) A 1426, March. A Parliament was held at Leicester (iii. I). B 1427 September to 1428 May. Orleans was besieged (i. 2, 4, 5, 6; ii. i, 2, 3). A 1429. The battle of Patay [called Poitiers^ iv. i. 19] at which Fastolfe [called Falstaff in the play] fled, and Talbot was taken (i. i. 103-140 ; compare iii. 2. 103-108). A 1429. Charles was crowned at Rheims (i. i. 92). A 1429. The French towns revolted (i. i. 60). For Paris mentioned among them compare v. 2. 2. E 1430, May. Joan of Arc was taken, and (1431, May) burned (v. 3. 1-44 ; v. 4. 1-93). B 1430, December. Henry VI. was crowned at Paris (iii. 4; iv. i). C 1435, September. Bedford died at Paris (iii. 2), and Burgundy made peace with France (iii. 3). E 1436. Paris submitted to Charles (v. 2. 2). E 1443. The match between Henry and Margaret was arranged (v. 3. 45-195 ; v. 5). E 1443. A truce was made for eighteen months (v. 4. 94-175)- D 1452. Talbot and his son were killed in battle (iv. 2, 3. 4, 5' 6, 7). THE MARLOWE GROUP OF PLAYS. 257 The capital letters prefixed to these dates will enable us to follow readily the arrangement of these events in the play. The A. group, com- prising i. I. 3, ii. 5, iii. i, is manifestly by one writer. The time limits of his scenes are 1422 and 1426 : the first scene contains allusions to events of a subsequent date, thrust in for dramatic effect without regard either to historical accuracy or the internal consistency of the play. Specially the battle of Patay, the crowning of Charles, and the revolt of the French towns may be noted. It is hardly requisite to do more than read the opening speech to see that the author of these scenes was Marlowe. It may be noticed, however, that in these scenes, and in these only, we find Gloster (Gloucester elsewhere), Reynold (Reignier or Reigneir else- where), and Roan (monosyllabic elsewhere). All these scenes are laid in London. The B. group, i. 2. 3. 4. 5. 6, ii. i. 2. 3, iii. 4, iv. I., contains only events that happened between 1427 and 1430, the scene being laid at Orleans, Auvergne, or Paris. The bit of the battle of Patay iii. 2. 103-108, thrust into the midst of scenes at Rouen in 1435, would probably belong to this group. It seems to be a preparation for iv. i, stuck for dramatic purposes in a position historically most incongruous. The author of these scenes is R 258 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. not easy to identify : his work is rather colourless, yet minor coincidences with the known work of Robert Greene and Thomas Kyd point to one of them as the writer. In this group only we find the spellings : Joane de Puzel (Pucelle elsewhere), Reigneir (occasionally also Reignier), and Gloucester (Gloster elsewhere, except in one instance, where Glocester is probably a misprint). There can be no doubt that these scenes are all by one author, and that not the writer of group A., but very far inferior. Group C., iii. 2. 3, is very like Group B. in general handling, but has some marked character- istics : here, and here only, we find Burgonie (Bur- gundy or Burgundie elsewhere) and Roan mono- syllabic ; Pucelle (Puzel in Group B.) and Joane (Jone in Group D.) also differentiate it from these groups. The time is 1435, place Rouen. I con- jecture the author to have been George Peele. Group D. v. 2-5 is made up of the Joan of Arc story of 1430-1 and the Margaret match of 1443. This group has Gloucester invariably (Gloster in Group A.), Jone (Joane in B., €.), Reignier (never Reigneir, as B.) The author of these scenes is without doubt Thomas Lodge. His versification is unmistakable, and the phrase *' cooling card " occurs in Marhis and Sylla, the older plays of John and THE MARLOWE GROUP OF PLAYS. 259 Leir (both times in parts by Lodge). It has not been traced in Greene, Peele, or Marlowe. Before considering Group E., iv. '2—7, which is concerned only with Talbot's last fight near Bour- deaux in 1452, I would draw attention to the fact that it is clear that this episode did not form part of the original play : it is merely connected with it by the two lines, v. 2. 16, 17, which may have been inserted for that purpose ; belongs chro- nologically to the next play, and is so different from, as well as so superior to, its surroundings, that in 1876 I suggested that Shakespeare might have written it. Mr. Swinburne has since sanctioned this opinion by adopting it. This, however, is not evidence ; what follows is. The scenes in the Folio are not divided in Acts i., ii. ; in the other Acts they are. Acts iii. and iv. i coincide with the modern division ; but v. I of the modern editors is iv. 2 in the Folio ; v. 2. 3. 4, are iv. 3 in the Folio, and V. 5 in the Folio is the whole fifth Act. Here then is the play completed without iv. 2-7, which are not numbered at all. It is plain that they were written subsequently to the rest of the play and inserted at a revival. They had to be inserted in such a manner as not to break the connection between this play and 2 Henry VL, and were put in the most convenient place, regardless of historic 26o LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. sequence. I take it for granted that this play in its original shape was acted before 2 Henry VI. y the commencement of which was evidently meant to fit on to the end of the preceding play. It is in accordance with the hypothesis here announced (that the play acted 3d March 1592 was new only in these Talbot scenes^) that we find Nash in his Piers Penniless (S. R. 8th August 1592) referring only to the Talbot scenes as new. " How it would have joyed brave Talbot; the terror of the French, to think that after he had lain two hundred 3^ear in his tomb, he should triumph again on the stage, and have his bones embalmed with the tears of ten thousand spectators at least." It was acted thirteen times at the Rose between March 3 and June 22, that is, at least once a week ; was the most popular play of the season, and was probably still in action '' about the city " or in the country during the time that the theatres were closed for the plague, from 22d June 1592 till January 1593, when it was again played at the Rose. It was, therefore, in action when Greene's celebrated address '^to those gentlemen, his quondam acquaintance, that spend their wits in making plays," was written. This address was published in Greene's Groatsworth of Wit after 2d September, when Greene died, and before 8th December, when Chettle's Kind-Hart's THE MARLOWE GROUP OF PLAYS. 261 Dream was entered on S. R., and was probably written about June. It is addressed to Marlowe, Lodge, and Peele. Attempts have been made to show that Nash, not Lodge, was the second play- wright of this trio, on the ground that Lodge was too old to be called '^ young Juvenal " or '' sweet boy;" was absent from England; was not a satirist, and had foresworn writing for the theatre. The only important argument is that of Lodge's age. As this is important in other respects, I give here a table of the known birth dates, matriculations, B.A. and M.A. degrees, and first appearances as authors of the University men connected at that time with the stage : — Born. Matri- culated. B.A. M.A. Author in Lyly . . . • 1553-4 1571 1573 1575 1579 Peele . . . . 1558 1574 1577 1579 1584 Greene . . . 1578 1583 1580 Lodge . . . . 1573 1577 1580 Marlowe . . . 1564 1581 1583 1587 1587 Nash . . . . 1567 1582 1585-6 ... 1589 It will be seen from the above table that the degree of B.A. was usually taken at eighteen or nineteen ; that Lodge and Greene were probably of about the same age ; and if we may judge from Greene's slowness in obtaining his M.A. degree, that he was not speedy in fulfiUing Ihe earlier 262 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. University requirements. Greene was probably the elder. At any rate, Lodge's age in 1592 was about thirty-three, surely not too old for one of about his own age to call '' boy." He was a satirist before 1592. The Looking-glass for London is bitter enough for any *' young Juvenal." On the other hand, Nash was certainly not the ^^ biting satyrist that lastly with me [Greene] wrote a comedy." He had at the time of Greene's death written no comedy whatever : his first connection with the stage was his Summer's Last Willy acted at Archbishop Whitgift's, in November 1592. Lodge, we know, had written with Greene The Looking-glass, and there is strong internal evi- dence of his having a hand in George-a-Greene and James IV. Nor could the statement that '^ those puppits that speak from our mouths, those anticks garnished in our colours," had ^^ all been beholding " to you, be with any consistency applied to Nash. Greene was evidently addressing the principal play- wrights of the time, and, if my present view is a true one, he seized the opportunity of Shake- speare's having made " new additions " to a play in which all of them had been concerned to endeavour to create an ill-feeling between '' the upstart crow beautified with our feathers " and those of the University^men, who had hitherto enjoyed a mono- THE MARLOWE GROUP OF PLAYS. 263 poly of writing for the stage, or neariy so. To have omitted Lodge in such an attempt would have been weak ; to have included Nash, absurd. The effect of Greene's address was not what he desired. Peele had probably already been a coad- jutor of Shakespeare, and Marlowe immediately, and no doubt Lodge later on, joined Shakespeare's company and wrote for them. In Greene's excuse must be considered how galling it must have been to a man in poverty and bad health to see a play which, while he was connected with it, had attracted little notice, suddenly raised to the highest success by the insertion of a few scenes written by a " Johannes factotum," a " Shakescene," who was *^ able to bombast out a blank verse " without being •' Magister in artibus utriusqtte universitatis" Con- firmations of my views as to this play will be found in the succeeding ones. The scene ii. 4 has long been recognised as so far superior to the rest of the play as to be probably due to the hand of Shakespeare at a later date, c. 1597—8. 2 Henry VI . — This play exists in two forms : one in the 1623 Folio, hereafter for convenience called F. ; the other in Quarto, entered S. R. 12th March 1594, hereafter called Q. It was published in 1594 as The First part of the Contention betwixt 264 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. the two Famous Houses of York and Lancaster. This Quarto version is a mangled and probably surreptitious copy of the original play, greatly abbreviated for acting. The play as first written will be hereafter called O. But F. and O. are not identical, although in many parts O. was more like F. than Q. It will be convenient to enter on the proof that O. was revised and altered before beginning the discussion of the authorship of either version, which is the most difficult, if not the most important, problem in Shakespearian criticism. In the Folio of 1623 a list is given of the principal actors in Shakespeare's plays. The me- thod in which this list is arranged has never been pointed out. It is chronological. The first ten names are those of the original men actors when the Chamberlain's company was instituted in 1594; the next five were added not later than 1603 ; the next five (excepting Field, who is inserted here from his early connection with Underwood and Ostler) c. 1 610; the final six after 161 7. By a comparison of this list with the names of the actors in 77?^ Seven Deadly Sins, originally acted before 1588, but the extant plot of which dates c. 1594, we shall get the evidence we want. The first seven names in the Folio list are (i.) W. Shakespeare, (2.) R. Burbadge, (3.) J. Hemmings, (4.) A. Phillips, UNIVERSITY THE MARLOWE GROUP OF PLAYS. 265 (5.) W. Kempe, (6.) J. Pope, (7.) G. Bryan. The last five of these we know to have been members of Lord Strange's company in 1593. In the 7. D, S. we find neither Shakespeare nor Hemmings ; but we do find (2.) R. Burbadge, (4.) Mr. PhiUips, (5.) Will Foole, (6.) Mr. Pope, (7.) Mr. Bryan. It will be noticed that the prefix Mr. is confined to members of Lord Strange's company. Next in the Folio list come (8.) Henry Condell, (9.) William Sly, (10.) Richard Cowley. These appear in 7. D. S. as (8.) Harry, (9.) W. Sly, (10.) R. Cowley. At this point we are struck with the fact that Harry, Will, and Dick are names of three Cade conspirators in Q., and naturally try to see if the other names, Nick, Jack, Robin, Tom, and George, occur in 7. D. S. For it is certain that in very early plays up to the end of the sixteenth century it was frequently the case that the actors in plays are designated by their proper christian names. We do find (11.) Nick (i.e., Nicholas Tooley, a boy- actor in 1597, but a man c. 1610 in the Folio of 1623), (12.) John Duke, (13.) Robert Pallant, (14.) Thomas Goodall ; but George, i.e., G. Peele, is not there discoverable. I may notice that Duke and Pallant, like Beeston, all three of whom left the Chamberlain's men for the Earl of Derby's in 1599, are excluded from the Folio list. On turning 266 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. to another play, Sir Thomas More, c. 1596, the only other one that can give us similar information on the same scale, I find (8.) Harry, (13.) Robin, (14.) T. Goodall, (15.) Kit (i.e., Christopher Beeston), and two boys, (16.) Ned and (17.) a second Robin, i.e., Robert Gough, who occurs in the Folio list as a man c. 1617. In the 7. D. S. these latter corre- spond to (15.) Kitt, (16.) Ned, (17.) R. Go. In Sir T. More there are two other names of this kind, Giles and Rafe. Of Giles nothing more is known, but Rafe Raye is mentioned in Henslowe's Diary as a Chamberlain's man in 1594. A further examina- tion of older plays leads to little additional informa- tion ; but what is to be found all confirms the opinion that I had formed (as will be seen), on other grounds, that 2 Henry VI. was written for the Queen's men. Thus in plays known to have be- longed to that company, I find in The Famous Vic- tories, (12.) John, (13.) Robin, (14.) Tom, (16.) Ned and Lawrence ; in Orlando, (14.) Tom and Rafe (Raye); in Friar Bacon, (10.) Dick, (14.) Tom; and in James IV., Andrew. There is no Andrew in our lists, but one occurs in Much Ado About Nothing, iv. 2, 1597-S) i^ place of Kempe : apparently a remnant of the older form of Lovers Labour's Won before Kempe undertook the part. But our list of the 7. D. S. is not yet exhausted : (18.) Sander (a boy- THE MARLOWE GROUP OF PLAYS. 267 player, but the same as Alexander Cooke, a man in 1603 in the Folio list), (19.) T. Belt, and (20.) Will (another boy), occur in The Taming of a ShreWj 1588. Of (21.) Vincent, nothing is known; but (22.) J. Sinkler acted with Gabriel (Spenser) and Humfrey (Jeffes) in j Henry VL, which belonged to Pembroke's company. Now as the last two, with Antony Jeffes and Robert Shaw, appear in Hen- slowe's Dtary for the first time immediately after the partial breaking up of Pembroke's company and their juncture with the Admiral's in October 1597, it is morally certain that Sinkler had gone to the Chamberlain's, and Spenser Shaw and the two Jeffes to the Admiral's, at or before that date. I feel, therefore, justified in concluding that the 7. D. S. gives us a nearly complete list of the Chamberlain's actors, formed of Lord Strange's players as a nucleus ; such of the Queen's men as joined them in 1 591-2, when they obtained many Queen's plays (see p. 108), and such of Pembroke's as joined them in 1594, when they obtained Pem- broke's plays (see p. 21). I have omitted only one name, and the absolute coincidence of nearly every one of the rest with the lists obtained from other sources is too remarkable to be the mere effect of accident : in fact, the chances are many millions to one against this being the 268 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. case. The one name omitted is (23.) John Holland. This name occurs nowhere else to my knowledge, but in the 7. D. S. plot and 2 Henry VI., Act iv. in the Folio, where he replaces Nick of the Quarto. There can be no doubt of this being an actor's name; and its occurrence shows at once that the Cade part of the play was revised, and that the revision was probably made after 1594. Had it been earlier, there would have been two Johns in the company, Duke and Holland, and Duke would not have been called simply Jack. If the above conclusions are well founded, 2 Henry VI. was originally written for the Queen's men as a continuation of / Henry VI., and, like the latter-mentioned play, passed into the hands of Lord Strange's men in 1 591-2, but was not, like it, then revised ; or it may, like George a Greene, have passed to Sussex' men ; from them, like Titus Andronicus, to Pembroke's ; and thence to the Chamberlain's. It is noticeable that although pub- lished in Quarto by the same person, MiUington, who published j Hemy VI. as the True Tragedy of Richard Duke of York in 1595, he put no name of acting company on the former play, as he did that of Pembroke's on the latter. This distinctly shows that the original companies for whom these plays were written were not identical, and that THE MARLOWE GROUP OF PLAYS. 269 that of 2 Henry VI. was probably unknown to Millington. As to the authorship of 2 Henry VI., it will be well to make F. the basis of investigation, always having in mind the possibility of passages having been inserted by the ultimate reviser. The corruption and omission in Q. caused by the shortening for stage purposes have been so great, that the usual plan of beginning with Q. becomes altogether misleading. The example of i Henty VI. induces me to attach great weight to the chronological arrangement of the historical facts. Henry's marriage in 1445 forms the subject of i. i, evidently written by Greene originally. The word ** alderliefest " in 1. 28 should specially be noted : it is used by Greene in his Mourning Garment, and " aldertruest " in his, James IV. Such words are not found in Marlowe, Peele, Lodge, or Shakespeare ; yet here one occurs in a passage found in F. but not in Q., plainly indicating omission in Q., not addition in F. The next portion, i. 2-ii. 4, is concerned with the banishment of the Duchess of Gloster, 1 44 1, and the story of Saunder Simcox, 1441, with which is incorporated the accusation of the armourer for high treason, 1446. This part (except i. 3. 45-103) is mainly by George Peele, but much altered in the F. revision. Peele his mark, '^ sandy plains," occurs in i. 4. 39. The Simcox anecdote, 270 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. however, ii. i. 59—153, which is quite unconnected with the rest of the play, is more like Kyd's work than Peek's, and may have been written by him. The exceptional bit, i. 3. 45-103, to the conversation in which no historical date can be assigned, is manifest Marlowe; a preparation for iii. i-iv. I, which is beyond question by him. The events in this section are (iii. I a) the accusation and (iii. 2) murder of Gloster in 1447 ; (iii. 3) the banish- ment of Suffolk, 1447 ; (iii. 3) the death of Win- chester in 1447; (iii. ib) the Irish insurrection in 1449; and, finally, (iv. i) the death of Suffolk in 1459. These scenes are the salt of the play. The opening lines of iv. i, the description in iii. 2. 160, &c., the awful pathos of the death of Winches- ter, are from the same hand as the end of Doctor Faustus. The differences of Q. and F. in this portion are mostly due to omissions in Q. : iii. 3, for instance, could not have been left in the state in which Q. has it by the meanest of the authors of the play : it is cut down by some illiterate actor. That revision there has been is, however, plain from the singular circumstance that in iii. 2 Elianor is given for Margaret as the Queen's name. This is probably due to Marlowe's almost simultaneous work on the older John, in which Queen Elianor is a prominent character. It would seem that the THE MARLOWE GROUP OF PLAYS. 271 revisor missed this scene, although correcting Mar- garet properly in the others. It is no printer's error ; for in 1. 26 we have " Nell/' for which some modern editors euphoniously substitute " Meg." The rest of the play, iv. 2-v. 3, is by one hand, and that hand Lodge's. The notion that Greene wrote it arises from want of discriminating Greene's work from Lodge's in The Looking-glass for London, all the better part of which is by Lodge. I fear that those who underrate the powers of this elegant and (in his own line) powerful writer estimate him by his earliest dramatic effort, Marius and Sylla. He should be read in his Glaucus and Rosalynde; and his evident wish to avoid being known as a dramatic writer should be taken into account. That he did continue to write plays for many years, I have no doubt, but the evidence is too extensive to be given here. This part of the play includes Cade's insurrection, 1450, and the battle of St. Albans, 1455. As regards the date, &c., of revision, see under the next play. J Henry VL is of very different character from the two preceding plays. If read in the F. version, no change of authorship is perceptible ; all is con- sistent ; and if the Q. version had not come down 272 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. to us, no one would have suspected a second author. It is plainly by Marlowe, but the Marlowe of Edward 11. , not of Faustus, later in date than 2 Henry VI. F. is nearly if not quite identical with the original play. Q. is not, as in the case of the preceding play, an abridgment for the stage made by the actors, but one made for the same purpose, carefully and accurately, apparently by the author himself The reason for this difference in the treatment of the plays is manifest. J Henry VI. was, as we know from the title-page, acted by Pembroke's men, and F. is printed from a prompter's copy, in which the names of Gabriel [Spenser], Humphrey [Jeffes], and [John] Sinkler appear in the stage directions ; and they were actors for that company. There is not a particle of evidence that this stage copy was ever altered in any way after the Chamberlain's company acquired it. A careful examination of such passages as ii. 5, the stronghold of the revision theory, shows too much coincidence between Q. and F. for any likehhood of rewriting having taken place, except by way of abridgment in Q. But in 2 Henry VI. things are quite different : the Greene and Marlowe parts are merely abridged in Q., and the Peele a good deal revised in F. as well as abridged in Q. ; but the Lodge part at the end is absolutely rewritten in THE MARLOWE GROUP OF PLAYS. 273 the St. Alban's battle, and the very names of the actors are changed in the Cade insurrection. Who could have done this but Shakespeare ? Here, and here only, can we find an explanation of the inclusion of these plays in the Folio edition of his works in 1623. In my opinion the history of the plays is this : About 1 5 88-9, Marlowe plotted, and, in conjunction with Kyd (or Greene), Peele, and Lodge, wrote / Henry VI. for the Queen's men. About 1589 the same authors wrote 2 Henry VI. ; in that year I have ascertained that Marlowe left the Queen's men, and in 1590 joined Pembroke's, for whom he alone wrote j Henry VI. In 1591— 2 the Queen's men were in distress, and sold, among other plays, / Henry VI. to Lord Strange's men, who produced it in 1592 with Shakespeare's Talbot additions as a new play. In the autumn of that year or in 1593—4, when the companies travelled on account of the plague, they cut down their plays for country representation ; among others, 2 Henry VI. (altered by some illiterate) and j Henry VI. (abridged by Marlowe himself). On this point compare the parallel instances of abridged plays, Hamlet, Orlando, and The Guise. In May 1593 2 Henry VI. passed to the Sussex' men with Leir, &c., when the Queen's men broke up ; in February 1594 with Andronicus to Pembroke's; in April, s 274 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. when Pembroke's company partly dissolved, all three plays were reunited in the hands of the Chamber- lain's men ; and for them 2 Henry VI. was, c. 1600, after Lodge had retired, remodelled by Shakespeare, and J Henry VI. corrected — the other authors, Peele, Marlowe, (Kyd ?), and Greene, having died before 1598. Meanwhile Millington pubHshed 2 Henry VI. Q. as York and Lancaster, and j Henry VI. Q. as Richard Duke of York, these abridged copies having become useless to Pembroke's men on the ceasing of the plague and of their travels. I have not noticed here the many parallel pas- sages from the works of Marlowe and others which confirm the assignment of authorship now advocated. It would be out of all proportion to give them here unless imperfectly : the reader will find some in Dyce's Marlowe, and more in my edition of Edward 11. Nor have I noticed the schoolboy interpreta- tion that explains ^' their " in Henry V., Epil. 1. 13, as referring to 2 and j Henry VI. : '' their," more Shakespeariano, like ^^ they " in the previous line, refers in form to the ''many" of 1. 12, but in meaning to the actors of / Henry VL, in which play, and not in j Henry VI., the loss of France is treated of. It is also most unlikely that the 1600 edition of The Duke of York should have been issued as played by Pembroke's servants if the play had THE MARLOWE GROUP OF PLAYS. 275 been previously acted by the Chamberlain's. Com- pare the parallel case of Andronicus. Miss Lee's statement, '' Greene wrote, Nash tells us," more than four others '* for Lord Pembroke's company," is absolutely without foundation. Nash says '^ the company " (Apology, 1593), and evidently alludes to the Queen's men, for whom Orlando, Bacon, Seh'- mus, and The Looking-glass were written. In fact, Greene's only known connection with any other company was his fraudulent selling of Orlando a second time to the Admiral's. Marlowe, and he alone, is known as a writer for Pembroke's : Kyd may have been, however, and in my opinion was, a contributor to their stage. Richard III. is closely connected with j Henry VI., and written with direct reference to it. In i. 2. 158, iv. 2. 98, iv. 4. 275, scenes in that play are plainly alluded to. Nor is it possible, if the two plays be read in immediate sequence, to avoid the feeling that they have a common authorship. On the other hand, a closer analysis shows that in Richard the Latin quotations, classical allusions, and peculiar animal similes which are characteristic of Henry have entirely disappeared. There are also discrepancies, such as Gray's fighting for the Lancastrians, i. 3. 130, whereas in j Henry VI., iii. 276 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. 2. 2, he is represented as a Yorkist, which shows a different hand in the two plays. Richard III. has always been regarded as entirely Shakespeare's, and its likeness to j Henry VI. has more than anything else kept alive the untenable belief that this last- named play was also, in part or wholly, written by our greatest dramatist. Yet the unlikeness of Richard III. to the other historical plays of Shake- speare, and the impracticability of finding a definite position for it, metrically or aesthetically, in any chronological arrangement, have made themselves felt. Even cautious Mr. Halliwell says, '^ There are sHght traces of an older play to be observed, pas- sages which belong to an inferior hand ; " and again, ^'To the circumstance of an anterior work having been used do we owe some of its weakness and exces- sively turbulent character " (Outlines, 94). A careful examination of the editions will be found to confirm and extend this conclusion. The 1597 Quarto (Qi), which is evidently an abridged version made for the stage, and which no doubt was the version acted during nearly all Elizabeth's reign, differs from the Folio in a way not to be paralleled in any other Shakespearian play. Minute alterations have been made in almost every speech, in a fashion which could not have been customary with him who uttered his thoughts so easily as scarcely to make THE MARLOWE GROUP OF PLAYS. 277 a blot {i.e, alteration) in his papers. The question of anteriority of the Q. and F. versions has been hotly debated on aesthetic grounds ; but the mere expurgation of oaths and metrical emendations in F. are enough to show that it is the later version, probably made c. 1602 ; while the fact that it was preferred by the editors of the 1623 Folio shows that they considered it the authentic copy of Shakespeare's work. In other instances, Macbeth^ The Tempest, &c., they have indeed given us abridged editions ; but there is neither proof nor likelihood that any other were accessible. We do not know what original copies were destroyed in the Globe fire of 161 3, and should be thankful for such versions as we have, which were probably the acting versions used at Blackfriars. But in this case the editors had at hand the Quartos, and unless 'they thought the Folio more authentic, I cannot see why they preferred it. Furthermore, the F. version appears to have been defective in some places; for v. 3. 50, end of play, and iii. i. 17—165, are certainly printed from Qg (1602). This has been controverted, but on very insufficient grounds. Now directly we compare the Folio and Quarto versions, we meet with evidence that altera- tion and correction have been largely used in both of them. For instance, Derby is found as a 278 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. character in the play in i. i, ii. i, 2, iv. 5, v. 5, in both versions; in iii. I. 2, iv. I, v. 2, he is called Stanley. This shows correction by a second hand. In iv. I, while Stanley has been inserted in the text, Derby remains in the prefixes ; v. 3 is only partially corrected, and both names occur. The names were not used indifferently, for in iv. 2, 4, we find Stanley in F. but Derby in Q. This shows a progressive correction in which Q. precedes F. It may be noticed that Darby is the original author's spelling. In like manner, Glostery the original prefix, has in i. I, 2, 3, ii. i. 2, iii. 4, 5, 7, been replaced in F. by Richard , but in iii. i, in the part printed from Q3, and there only, Gloster remains. So again Margaret is indicated in the older version by Qu. Mar., Qu. M., &c., but never Mar.y as in F. iv. 4. In F. i. 3 we find by side of Mar, a remainder of the older form in Q. M. This is not an exhaustive statement, but sufficient I think to show that alterations were made, as I suggest. There can be little doubt that in this, as in John, Shakespeare derived his plot and part of his text from an anterior play, the difference in the two cases being that in Richard III. he adopted much more of his predecessor's text. I believe that the anterior play was Marlowe's, partly written for Lord Strange's company in 1593, but THE MARLOWE GROUP OF PLAYS. 279 left unfinished at Marlowe's death, and completed and altered by Shakespeare in 1594. It was no doubt on the stage when, on 19th June 1594, the older play on Richard III., '^ with the conjunction of the two Houses of Lancaster and York," was entered S. R. That was acted by the Queen's players. The unhistorical but grandly classical conception of Margaret, the Cassandra prophetess, the Helen-Ate of the House of Lancaster, which binds the whole tetralogy into one work, is evidently due to Marlowe, and the consummate skill with which he has fused the heterogeneous contributions of his coadjutors in the two earlier Henry VI. plays is no less worthy of admiration. I do not think it possible to separate Marlowe's work from Shake- speare's in this play — it is worked in with too cunning a hand ; but wherever we find Darby, Qu, M., Glo., &c., we may be sure that some of his handiwork is left. Could any critic, if the older John were destroyed, tell us which lines had been adopted in the later play ? Nor can I enter, unless in a special monograph, on the relations of the Quartos to each other. The question is of no importance, and I need only say that the usual corruptions take place from Qi to Q5, and that in Qg (1622) many readings are found agreeing with F. 28o LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. which are not in the other Quartos. The same phenomenon is observed in the 1619 edition of The Whole Contention^ and far too much has been made of it. It merely indicates correction by attendance at the theatre and picking up a few words during the action. The only Quartos deserving special notice are Qj, as containing Shakespeare's first " additions," and Qg, as having been used in printing part of F. I do not think the allusion in Weever's EpigramSy written 1 595-6, is to this play. It may be so. Titus Andronicus. — That this play is not by Shakespeare is pretty certain from internal evidence. The Latin quotations, classical allusions, use of pour as prefix in iv. I, manner of versification, and above all the introduction of rape as a subject for the stage, would be sufficient to disprove his authorship. Fortunately we know that it was pro- duced by the Earl of Sussex' men, 23d January 1594, and Shakespeare belonged then to Derby's (Lord Strange's). It was afterwards, on the breaking up of that company, acted by Pembroke's and Derby's before 1 6th April, when Lord Derby died. Enlargement in the FoHo or abridgment in the Quarto, 1600 (we have no copy extant of the first THE MARLOWE GROUP OF PLAYS. 281 edition, entered S. R. February 1594), appears in iii. 2, found in F., not in Q., and there is a distinct continuity between Acts i. and ii. ; at the end of Act i. we have ^' manet Moore," not Exeunt simply. Whether this play got into the Folio by some confusion with Titus and Vespasian, played by Lord Strange's men nth April 1592, which was, as we know from a German version extant, written on the same subject, and in which Shakespeare may have had some share, we cannot tell ; but it was certainly played and revised (there was another edition in 161 1), while the other play has perished. That it was written by Marlowe I incline to think. What other mind but the author of The Jew of Malta could have conceived Aaron the Moor ? Mr. Dyce has warned us against attributing too many plays to the short career of Marlowe, but he did not consider that Marlowe probably wrote two plays a year from 1587— 1593, and that we have only at present seven acknowledged as his. Those now attributed to him, in whole or part, by me will raise the number to a baker's dozen ; but in some of these, as the older Joh7i and / and 2 Henry VI. , his share was comparatively shght. Nevertheless, I think the opinion that Kyd wrote this play of Andronicus worth the examination, although, with such evidence as has yet been 282 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. adduced, Marlowe has certainly the better claim. Shakespeare probably never touched this play un- less by inserting iii. 2, which is possible. Edward III. The Shakespearian part of this play, i. 3, ii. I. 2 (beginning at ** What, are the stealing foxes "), which contains lines from the then unpub- lished Sonnets, ii. i. lO, 450, and an allusion to the recently published Lucreece, ii. 2. 194, was clearly acted in 1594, after 9th May, when Lucreece was entered on S. R. Edward III. was entered 1st December 1595. This love-story part is from Painter's Palace of Pleasure. The original play is by Marlowe, and was acted in 1590 and is thus alluded to in Greene's Never too Late, c. December in that year : "Why, Roscius, art thou proud with iEsop's crow, being prankt with the glory of others* feathers ? Of thyself thou canst say nothing ; and if the Cobler hath taught thee to say Ave Ccesar, disdain not thy tutor because thou pratest in a king's chamber." Ave Ccesar occurs in i. i. 164, but not in any other play of this date have I been able to find it. There are many similarities between the Marlowe part of this play and Henry VI. As the Roscius in Greene's pamphlet was the player who had interpreted the puppets for seven years, who induced Greene to write for the stage. THE MARLOWE GROUP OF PLAYS. 283 and had himself written The Moral of Man^s Wit and The Dialogue of Dives, there can be no doubt that Robert Wilson is Roscius, and that he was an actor in Edward III. in 1590. It was acted by Pembroke's company, and must have been acquired by Lord Strange's men with the other Pembroke plays in 1594. ( 284 ) SECTION VI. on the plays by other authors acted by Shakespeare's company. During Shakespeare's career, 1589— 161I; we only know of some two dozen plays having been produced by his " fellows," in addition to the three dozen included in his works ; and of these, about two- fifths are anonymous, and have been at some time or other ascribed, in whole or part, to the great master. It is evident that he had the management of the playwriting for his house pretty nearl}'' in .his own hands, and that his method was the polar opposite to that of which we know most, viz., Henslowe's. While the latter employed twelve poets in a year, who produced for the Admiral's men a new play every fortnight or so, the Chamber- lain's company depended almost entirely on two poets at a time, and produced not more than four new plays a year. Hence the explanation of the vastly higher character of the Globe plays as PLAYS BY OTHER AUTHORS. 285 compared with the Fortune : hence also the ex- planation of the small pay and needy condition of the latter, and their jealousy of the rapid advance- ment in wealth and position of Shakespeare, who had virtually a monopoly of play-providing for his company. It would be out of place to discuss at length the plays written for it by Jonson, Dekker, &c., but fuller notice of the anonymous plays is due to the reader. They have, strange to say, never yet been treated as a complete group ; and yet surely as much may be learned by considering Shakespeare's theatrical surroundings, the plays in which he acted, and which he probably had more or less suggested, supervised, or revised, as by elaborately working out the debtor and creditor details of his malt-bills. I will treat of these plays in nearly chronological order. 1590. Fair Em is the earliest play we certainly know of as acted by Lord Strange's company. It is alluded to by Greene in his address prefixed to his Farewell to Folly. He quotes as abusing of Scripture, " A man's conscience is a thousand witnesses," and " Love covereth the multitude of sins," and says these words were used by " two lovers on the stage arguing one another of unkindness." Greene's 286 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. tract was written and entered S. R. ist June 1587, but not published till 1591, when the address which mentions his Mourning Garment (S. R. November 2, 1590) was added. Fair Em dates, therefore, late in 1590. It was probably written by R. Wilson, and is certainly not a romantic, but a satirical play ; else why should Greene have been offended at it ? In Sc. 14 of The Three Ladies of London , pro- duced before 1584, Wilson uses the expression, '^ I, Conscience, am a thousand witnesses," and in his Three Lords and Three Ladies of London, acted at Court, Christmas 1588-9, Sc. 2, ^^ Love doth cover heaps of cumbrous evils." In order to explain the nature of the satire in Fair Em, it is necessary to investigate a hitherto unnoticed identification of Worcester's 1586 company with the Admiral's, of the highest importance for stage history as determining the actors in Marlowe's early plays. On Twelfth Day 1585-6, "the servants of the Admiral and the Lord Chamberlain " acted at Court, i.e. the players of Lord Charles Howard, who held both these offices. Mr. Halliwell (Illustrations , P- 30 confused this Chamberlain with Lord Hunsdon, and takes the entry to refer to two companies. I sent him a correction of these and many other blunders, which he has never rectified, years ago — a fact which I should not notice had he not publicly complained PLAYS BY OTHER AUTHORS. 287 that, with one or two exceptions, of whom I am not one, he had received no help of this kind. Of this Admiral's company in the plague year, 1 5 86, there is no trace in London ; but in that year, and that year only, a company travelled under the protection of the Earl of Worcester. They were licensed for this travel on 14th January, and were at Leicester in the course of the year (Shakespeare Society's Papers, iv.) ; their names were R. Browne, J. Tun- stall (Dunstan), E. Allen, W. Harryson, T. Cooke, R. Jones, E. Browne, R. Andrews ; all of whom were licensed, together with hired men, T. Powlton and W. Paterson, '' Lord Harbard's man," i.e. a member of the company of Herbert Earl of Pem- broke : a scratch company evidently, but containing names of celebrated London actors. In 1587 and 1588, the Admiral's men acted in London pub- licly, and at Christmas 1588-9 at Court. On 3d January 1588-9, Alleyn and Jones (acting evidently for the company) dissolved partnership, and Alleyn bought up their properties and play-books. In November the Admiral's men were playing about the City, and not at the Curtain, where they had probably produced Tamberlain, Faustus, Orlando^ Alcazar y and Marius and Sylla; and in their Court performance on 23d December were reduced to showing ''feats of activity." In 1590 R. Brown 288 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. and Jones went abroad and acted at Leyden in October. They returned, and on December 27 and February 16 the Admiral's men acted at Court for the last time before the reconstitution of their company in 1594. Already R. Brown, J. Broad- street, T. Sackville, and R. Jones had obtained a pass from Lord C. Howard, the Admiral, their patron, to travel to Germany by way of Holland, and a company acted there till 161 7 under Sack- ville. Jones returned to England and joined the reconstituted Admiral's company under Allen in 1594. Alley n had never relinquished the title of Admiral's servant, even when in Lord Strange's service in 1593. Putting these facts together, can there be any doubt that the service under Wor- cester was merely temporary, and that in the list of 1586 we have that of the principal actors in the Admiral's company ? Mr. R. Simpson, to whom we owe so much as a discoverer of problems to be solved, and so little for their solution, rightly stated that Fair Em was a satirical play, and that Man vile (or Mandeville, the lying traveller) meant Greene, and Mounteney the aspiring Marlowe. He was wrong in identifying Valingford with Shake- speare — he was Peele (valing, an old castle or peele — Camden) — and doubly wrong in making William Conqueror Kempe. Robert of Windsor, PLAYS BY OTHER AUTHORS. 289 his travelling name, points to Robert Browne ; and it was to Browne's company that Marlowe and Peele had been attached, not to Kempe's. The names William Conqueror and Marquess Lubeck were probably names of characters which had been acted by Browne and Jones, perhaps in the play of William Conqueror, which was on the stage as an old play in 1593. Fair Em of Manchester is no doubt, as Mr. Simpson says, Lord Strange's com- pany of players. 1622 [often, but wrongly, dated c. 1591]. The Birth of Merlin^ or The Child hath Found his Father, was published in 1662 as '^written by W. Shakespeare and W. Rowley." Rowley probably revised the play for a revival c. 1622, but in the main it is manifestly by another hand. The comic scenes with Joan Goto't may be Rowley's, but the serious parts are palpably Middleton's. I owe the suggestion of his authorship to Mr. P. A. Daniel. A ballad on the subject was entered on lOth May 1589, S. R. In ii. 3^ iii. 6 we have some very interesting imitations of Shakespeare. Cutting out the Rowley additions in iii. i. 4, I would ask the reader to carefully compare the remaining parts of ii. 3^, beginning with Aurel. ''Artesia, dearest love," iii. 2. 3. 5. 6, with such 290 = LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. passages of Shakespeare as they call to memory : e.g. iii. 2, ^' This world is but a mask/' &c., with As You Like It, ii. 7. 139, &c., and iii. 3. 1-6 with Z^flr, iii. 2. 1-9. Compare especially the definition of a crab as ^' a creature that goes backward " in ii. 3, with Hamlet, ii. 2. 206, ^' if like a crab you could go backward." Crab as the name of an animal does not occur elsewhere in Shakespeare. I be- lieve the early plays on this subject, Vortiger, 4th December 1596, and Uter Pendragon, 29th April 1597, in Henslowe's Diary, to be alluded to by Jonson in his Prologue to Every Man in his Humour, 1601 — " To make a child now swaddled to proceed Man : and then shoot up in one beard and weed Past threescore years." 1592. June. A [Merry] Knack to Know a Knave was acted as a new play at the Rose by Edward Alley n and his company {i.e. Lord Strange's) ^^with Kempe's Merriments of the Men of Gotham.^^ The introduc- tion of Honesty as a principal character points to R. Wilson the elder as the author. It was certainly not written by Greene and Nash, as Mr. Simpson supposes. Besides this play and a number of revivals, mostly of plays of the Queen's company PLAYS BY OTHER AUTHORS. 291 (see my Shakespearian Study, p. 88), Lord Strange's men acted this season certain new plays : on March 3, / Henry VI.; April ii, Titus and Vespasian (these have been already noticed) : Apri I28, 2d. Tamhercame ; May 23, The Taner of Denmark; and in 1593, January 5, The Gelyous \Jealious\ Comedy ; January 30, The Guise (i.e. Marlowe's Massacre of Paris). 1594- July 24, Locrine was entered S. R. and published in 1595 as ''newly set forth, overseen, and cor- rected by W. S." I see no reason to infer that W. S. is William Shakespeare. The play was written, according to Mr. Simpson, by Tilney in 1586. I rather think for him by G. Peele. Shake- speare has no concern with it further than the letters W. S. indicate. 1595 [possibly 1599]. A ^Larum for London, or The Siege of Antwerp, was acted about this time. It was published in 1602, but entered S. R. 29th May 1600. The title at once points it out as a morahsing play, of the same class as A Looking-Glass for London; didactic as to politics. I believe it to be by the same author, T. Lodge. The fear of a Spanish 292 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. invasion is evident in the play. In July 1595 the Spaniards made a descent on Cornwall and burned Mouse Hole, Neulin, and Penzance. This is the most likely time for any real danger to London from the Spaniards to have been appre- hended. Lodge, probably in the next year, vi^rote The Taming of the Shrew (afterwards altered by Shakespeare) for the Chamberlain's company. The seldom-used word villiaco, found in this play, occurs in 2 Henry VL, iv. 8, in the part I assign to Lodge. 1596. The Life and Death of Sir Thomas More was certainly acted in this year. That this also was a political play is evident from the numerous altera- tions made in the MS. by E. Tylney, Master of the Revels. He specially objected to all passages directed against the French ; and cut out entirely Scene i, the insurrection scene. This must have alluded too closely to events of the time. Now on 29th June 1595 there was an insurrection of the London Prentices, suppressed by the then Lord Mayor just in the same way as that in the play by Sheriff More. (See Maitland and Stowe under that date.) Moreover, in October 1595 Hartford was imprisoned in the Tower for contempt, and PLAYS BY OTHER AUTHORS. 293 threatened with loss of his title, just as More is in the play, which was no doubt acted while he was in prison (Aikin's Elizabeth, chap, xxiv.) I have previously noted the certainty of this play being acted by the Chamberlain's players, T. Goodale being one of the actors. It was probably written chiefly by Lodge ; but some scenes, such as Scene 2 with the Lifter and Scenes 9, 10, with Faulkner and the players, bear unmistakable marks of another hand, the same, I think, as the author of Lord Crom- well. It is a singular play, containing a comedy. Scenes i-io, and a tragedy, Scenes 11-18, in one. This leads me to conjecture that it is the same play as was pla3'ed by the Paul's children before James and the King of Denmark, 30th July 1606. This contained a comedy and tragedy, and was called Abuses. I need hardly say that this title is specially appropriate to Sir T. More. It pleased the kings, as was to be expected, more than it did the authorities under EHzabeth. We know that some plays of the Chamberlain's company passed into the hands of the Paul's boys, e.g. Satiromastix. The part of Justice Suresby is probably the one alluded to in The Return from Parnassus, iv. 3, where Kempe tells Philomusus (Lodge) that his face " would be good for a foolish mayor or a foolish justice of peace." In the same scene. 294 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. Studioso (Drayton) is made to recite from Richard III, and Jeronymo, both which plays were still acted by the Chamberlain's men in 1599 ; so that Drayton was looked on in 1602 as a tragedian, Lodge as a comedian. This agrees with Meres' classification of them in 1598. Nevertheless it is certain that both of them produced both tragedies and comedies. 1597-9- The Merry Devil of Edmonton^ acted at the Globe, and therefore still on the stage in 1599, was closely connected with the early form of / Henry IV., in which Falstaff was called Oldcastle. (see supra, P- 33)- Coxeter says that it was ascribed in an old MS. of the play to Michael Drayton. No doubt it was written by him. The character of the Host, and indeed all the play, are so like parts of Sir John Oldcastle, which we know to have been partly written by Drayton, that it is not possible to doubt the identity of authorship. That play was written by Munday (i. i ; v. 2 — end), Wilson (? i. 2 ; ii. 3 ; iii. 4), Hathaway (? iii. I ; v. i), and Drayton, who probably was the plotter and chief composer. The Merry Devil was entered S. R. 22d October 1607. The entry on 5th April 1608 refers to the prose history by Thomas Brewer. Nevertheless that entry has been con- PLAYS BY OTHER AUTHORS. 295 fidently adduced by Mr. Halliwell and others as proof that Drayton did not write the play (see HaUiwell's Dictionary of Old Plays under Merry Devil) : which as printed is evidently greatly ab- ridged. All the part relating to Smug's taking the place of St. George as the sign of the inn, for instance, which is found in the prose story, must have been cut out, though an allusion to it is left in the end of the play. This alteration was pro- bably made c. 1603—4, as in the Black Book (S. R. 22d March 1604) a revival of the play contempo- raneous with The Woman Killed with Kindness is alluded to. It remained popular even to 1616 : Jonson's prologue to The Devil is an Ass calls it " your dear delight." That play is of a some- what similar nature, founded on the adventures of a devil incarnate ; so also are Dekker's If this be not a Good Play the DeviFs in ify and Haughton's Grim the Cobler of Croydon, or The Devil and his Dame (6th May 1600). In this last, which gives a posterior limit of date, Robin Goodfellow calls himself ^^ merry devil," and is no doubt intended as a satire on Drayton, as is also the Robin Good- fellow of Wily Beguiled, 1597. In Sir Giles Goose- cap by Chapman, the continued usage by Goosecap of the phrases ** tickle the vanity on't " and '* we are all mortal " points to Drayton as the person 296 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. ridiculed under that name ; while in 2 Henry IV., ii. I. 66, Falstaff uses the exact phrase of Smug in scene 3 of ^' tickling the catastrophe." Another point of connection with Shakespearian satire of this date is found in the term Hungarian, scene S, which occurs in Merry Wives, i. 3. 23, and nowhere else in Shakespeare. The great similarity of the Hosts in these two plays has been often noted. There is much confusion in the Christian names in our present version of the Merry Devil, an indica- tion of revision. Drayton's first connection with the Chamberlain's company was in my opinion his writing the Induction for The Taming of the Shrew in 1596, afterwards altered by Shakespeare. The Merry Devil was entered as Shakespeare's on S. R. 9th September 1653, probably on account of the similarity of title with The Merry Wives of Win- dsor; and this similarity does point to a connec- tion, though not of authorship, between these plays. The Oldcastle play, acted 6th March 1600 at Lord Hunsdon's, was probably The Merry Devil. 1594- The Seven Deadly Sins, an old play plotted for the Queen's company by Tarleton, was revived. I have had already occasion to refer to the plot of this play, which is extant at Dulwich College. PLAYS BY OTHER AUTHORS. 297 1598-9- A Warning for Fair Women was entered S. R. 17th November 1599, and printed as ^'lately divers times acted " by the Chamberlain's men. Its title, so like A Looking-Glass for London and A ^Larum for London^ its didactic character, its Induction, with History, Tragedy, and Comedy for actors, so like that to Mucedorus, and its style and metre all point to Thomas Lodge as the author. As a murder-play it should be compared with Arden of Fevershanty The Yorkshire Tragedy, and Two Tragedies in One. Plays on similar subjects, such as Page of Plymouth, by Dekker and Jonson, September 1599 ; The Tragedy of Merry ^ by Haugh- ton and Day, December 1599; The Tragedy of Orphans, by Chettle, November 1599; and perhaps The Stepmother's Tragedy, by Dekker and Chettle, October 1599, were very abundant just at this time. This seems to be Lodge's final original production for the stage. 1598-9. Every Man in his Humour in its first form, with the Italian names, in the latter part of 1598, and his Every Man out of his Humour in the spring of 1599^ both by Jonson, were acted by the 298 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. Chamberlain's men. Jonson then left them and wrote for the children of the Chapel. 1 60 1. Satiromastix was written by Dekker against Jonson's Poetaster for the Chamberlain's men, and acted first by them and afterwards by the Paul's boys. 1601. The Chronicle History of Thomas Lord Cromwell was entered S. R. nth August 1602. This is clearly a political play, in which the career of Cromwell Earl of Essex shadows forth another Earl of Essex, of much greater interest to an audience of 1601. One scene, iii. 2, reminds us strongly of scene 9 in Sir T. More; and the whole play is very like the part of Sir John Oldcastle assigned by me to Drayton. In Act iv. the Chorus apologises for the omission of Wolsey's life. That had, in fact, been treated already by Chettle in August 1 60 1, and by Chettle, Munday, Drayton, and Smith in November 160 1, in two plays for the Admiral's men. Drayton's last work for them was done in May 1602 and Cromwell was probably acted in June. The second edition, 161 3, had " by W. S." on the title. This was clearly an PLAYS BY OTHER AUTHORS. 299 attempt, like the ''by W. Sh." in the 161 1 edition of the older John^ to father the play on Shake- speare after his retirement from theatrical life. It has been supposed that Wentworth Smith is in- dicated. This is most unlikely. Smith was a hack writer for Henslowe, 160 1 -3, not one scrap of whose work was ever thought worth publishing ; and that he, at the same date that he was a " novice " in the Admiral's, should have been an independent author for the Chamberlain's, is one of the plausible figments that will not be received by any one acquainted with stage history. If W. S. are authentic initials, W. Sly is a more likely claimant. 1603. The London Prodigal was published in 1605, with the name of William Shakespeare on the title-page. This surely shows some connection of Shakespeare with its authorship. It is true that in 1600 his name had been attached to Sir John Oldcastle in one of the editions then printed, and that he could not have written, or been con- cerned with the writing of, that play ; but the peculiar relation in which it stands to his historical plays places it in a very different category from a play which was acted by his own company, and over the publication of which he may be supposed 300 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. to have had some control, direct or indirect. Perhaps he " plotted " it. At the same time it should be noticed that the publisher, Butter, was the same man who issued the Quarto of Lear in 1608, which was certainly derived from an authentic copy, however carelessly printed ; while Pavier, who published Oldcastle, was notoriously an issuer of surreptitious and piratical editions. This play is certainly by the same hand as the Cromwell. In iii. 3, " And where nought is the king doth lose his due," with which compare Cromwell^ ii. 3, " And where nought is the king must lose his right," is taken from Nash's Unfortunate Traveller (p. 15, Grosart's reprint), " When it is not to be had the king must lose his right." Compare, also, *' Pardon, dear father, the follies that are past," v. i, with Cromwell, iv. chorus, " Pardon the errors are already past," and the passing of St. George's inn in i. 2 with the Merry Devil plot. The date of production is certainly 1603. The words " under the King," ii. I, and the allusion to Armin the actor, who took the part of Matthew Flowerdale, " So young an armin," v. i, forbid an earlier date. This last allusion, by the bye, has never previously been explained. On the other hand, the allusions to Cutting Dick, ii. 2, The Devil and his Dame, iv. 2 (Mar. 1600), and to "wanton Cressid," v. i. (1602), PLAYS BY OTHER AUTHORS. 301 would lose much effect at a later date. The name Greenshield was adopted from this play in the " comical satire " of Northward Ho, 1605, as Fresco- bald was in The Honest Whore, 1603, from CromwelL 1603. Sejamts, by Jonson, was acted this year. Jonson had returned to the Chamberlain's men from the Admiral's, for whom he wrote after leaving the Chapel children in 1601 ; but this play being a political satire on Leicester got the company into trouble, and he again left them for the children of the Revels. See supra, p. 49. 1604. The Malcontent, by Marston, was acted '^ with the additions played by the King's Majesty's servants " by Webster, and entered S. R. 25th July. This play belonged to the Revels' children, and was appropriated in retaliation for their playing Jeronymo, which was the property of the King's men. (See the Induction.) Compare p. 52. 1604. Gowry, already noticed, was performed this year. 302 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. 1603-4. 77!^ Miseries of Enforced Marriage, by George Wilkins, was entered S. R. 31st July 1607. It was founded on the life of Mr. Caverley, the hero of The Yorkshire Tragedy, and the play ends with a reconciliation before October 1603, when his third child was born, and dating about January or February, just before the accession of King James. This play was written before 1605. Mr. P. A. Daniel discovered the identity of story in it and in The Yorkshire Tragedy. The share of G. Wilkins in the authorship of Timon and Pericles has already been noticed. He left the King's company for the Queen's in 1607, before publishing the present play. He is not the G. Wilkins who died in 1603 • Mr. W. C. Hazlitt's statement in his Handbook to that effect is a mistake. 1605. A Yorkshire Tragedy, founded on the same story, was certainly acted soon after the execution of Caverley, 5 th August 1605. The murdered chil- dren were buried in April. The prose account of Caverley's trial was entered S. R. 24th August, and the story of his life was printed by V. S. PLAYS BY OTHER AUTHORS. 303 (Valentine Simmes) in the same year. The play was entered S. R. 2d May 1608, and printed as by WiUiam Shakespeare. I cannot think that this was unauthorised. Compare the parallel instance of The London Prodigal. Was the author his brother Edmund ; and did Shakespeare assist in or revise his work ? (See p. 60.) The " young mis- tress " of Scene i is the Clare Harcup of the Enforced Marriage^ and her decline is inconsistent with her death in that play, but in accordance with facts. Together with three other probably similar short plays it was acted as Alfs One, or one of the Four Plays in One. 1605. Volpone or the Fox, by Jonson, was acted in this year. 1605-6. Mucedorus, an old play, originally written, I think, for the Queen's company by T. Lodge, was revived under exceptional circumstances, with additions at Court. From the added part at the end of the play it appears that "a lean hungry neagre (meagre) cannibal," "a scrambling raven with a needy beard," had written "a comedy" for the King's players, containing '^ dark sentences pleasing to 304 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. factious brains/' and that information had been given to '' a puissant magistrate/' and that the players feared " great danger or at least restraint " in consequence. Moreover, this " unwilling error " had been lately *' presented " to the King : never- theless, not being '^ boys/' but ^' men/' they had avoided the ^' trap/' apologised, and been pardoned. The only known new comedy, not Shakespeare's, produced by the King's men between 1604 and 1 6 10 was Jonson's Fox. It contains a good deal, even in its present state, that must have been unpalatable at Court, especially on monopolies and spies ; and Jonson altered his plays so much after performance for publication, that it is dangerous to draw conclusions as to what the play may have originally contained. One thing in it, however, was particularly *' obnoxious to construction," the miraculous " OgHo del Scoto," which, in the case of one who was this same year imprisoned for satirising the Scots in Eastward Ho, might well be taken as a gird at the Scotch King's miraculous charisma in treating for the King's evil. It is to the Eastward Ho affair that the " trap for boys, not men," alludes ; and the meagreness and " needy beard " plainly indicate Jonson as the " raven " (Corbaccio) who wrote the comedy. In accordance with this view stands the fact that on the Christmas PLAYS BY OTHER AUTHORS. 305 succeeding this unfortunate performance of 1605-6 there was no Court masque produced by Jonson. The date hitherto assigned to the " additions " in Mucedorus has been 1610, because the edition of that year was issued as it was acted before the King on Shrove Sunday night. But there was no Court performance in the 1609-10 winter on account of the plague. The date 1610 is there- fore impossible ; the words on the title were probably repeated in the usual way from the 1 606 edition, of which, though mentioned in Beauclerc's Catalogue^ 1781, no copy unfortunately is extant. Of the authorship of the original play, with its Induction, " cooling-card " mark, and many simi- larities to Marius and Sylla, there can be no doubt : it was written by Lodge. Who wrote the '^ addi- tions " in 1605-6 it would be hard to say : perhaps Wilkins. 1607-II. The Revengef^s Tragedy b}^ Cyril Tourneur (?) was entered S. R. 7th October 1607, and pro- bably acted not long before. The Second Maiden^s Tragedy^ licensed in 161 1, which we know to have been acted by the King's men, was probably by the same author. In 16 10 Jonson returned to the King's men 3o6 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. (he had been writing for the Revels' children since he left, after producing Volpone), and his Alchemist was acted in that year; in 1611 his CatalinCy and Beaumont and Fletcher's Philaster, Maid's Tragedy, and King and no King; c. 161 2 Webster's Duchess of Malfy was produced. The further prosecution of this subject belongs to a life of Fletcher rather than of Shakespeare. ( 307 ) SECTION VII. EARLY ENGLISH PLAYS IN GERMANY. The importance of the performance of English plays in Germany and its bearings on our own stage history has never been duly estimated. This is owing to the fact that the groups of such plays have not been treated as wholes, only isolated refer- ences to single dramas having been occasionally made by our critics. I must here confine myself to such groups as have reference to the productions of Shakespeare. In 1626-7 a company of Enghsh- men acted at Dresden, and a list of their perform- ances has fortunately been preserved (Cohn, Shake- speare in Germany, p. 115). This company ap- pears from their christian names to have been the Company of the Revels, which broke up in 1625 in the plague-time. In the Runaway's Answer, 1625, to Dekker's Rod for Runaways, which was directed against those who left London for fear of the plague, the players say, " We can be bankrupts on 3o8 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. this side and gentlemen of a company beyond the sea : we burst at London and are pieced up at Rotterdam." The 1626 Dresden company were Robert Pickleherring [R. Lee] and two boys ; Jacob der Hesse, and Johan Eydtwardtt (two Germans) ; Aaron the dancer (probably a German Jew) ; Thomas die Jungifrau [T. Basse], John [Cumber], William the wardrobe-keeper (probably a German), the Englishman, the Redhaired, and four boys. The other members of the Revels' company can be traced in England ; and although Robert, Thomas, and John are common christian names, they are not to be found in conjunction in any other list of English players of the date. The plays acted by these men were the following : — 1. Duke of Mantua and Duke of Verona. Comedy. 2. Chris tabella. C. 3. Amphitryon. C. 4. Romeo andjulietta. Tragedy. [Founded on Shake- speare's play of 159 1 ; extant in German MS., and printed by Cohn.] 5. Duke of Florence. Tragi-Comedy. [Not Mas- singer's play, which is of ten years' later date.] d. King of Spain afid ViceRoy of Portugal C. [Kyd's Jeronymo, c. 1588.] 7. Julius CcEsar. T. [Query, the old play men- EARLY ENGLISH PLAYS IN GERMANY. 309 tioned by Gosson in 1580, or the Admiral's play of 1594, or Shakespeare's, or the Admiral's of 1602, or the Oxford of 1606, or Chapman's, or the old play on which Chapman's is founded ? The last most likely.] 8. Crysella. C. 9. Duke of Ferrara. C. 10. Somebody and Nobody. T. C. [Printed in German, 1620; extant in an altered form, by Heywood in my judgment, as played by Queen Anne's men in English; published c. 1609. In its original form acted c. 1591.] 11. King of Denmark and King of Sweden. T. C. \Clyomon and Clamydes. ? by R. Wilson, c. 1385.] 12. Hamlet^ Prince of Denmark. T. [From Kyd's old play, c. 1589 ; extant in modernised MS. in Germany ; printed in Cohn. The Induction with Night and the Furies is quite in Kyd's manner.] 13. Orlando Furioso. C. [Greene's play, c. 1587.] 14. King of England and King of Scotla7id. C. [Greene (and Lodge)'sy"^w^j IV.^ 1591-] 15. Hieronymo^ Marshal of Spain. T. \Yi^^^ Spanish Tragedy, c. 1588.] 16. Haman and Queen Esther. T. C. [Printed in German, 1620, from an English play acted in 1594 by the Chamberlain's men, but an old play then ; originally not later than 159 1. Compare the 310 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. interlude in Kirkman's IVifs, which was probably founded on it. The German play ought to be made accessible to English readers.] 17. T/ie Martyr Dorothea. T. [Perhaps from a play by Dekker and Massinger, revived for the Revels' com- pany between 1 6 1 9 and 1622. Thisistheonly play in this list to which I can assign a definite date later than 1592. But were both taken from an older play ?] 18. Dr. Faust. T. [Marlowe's play, 1588.] 19. King of Arragon. T. C. [Greene's Alphonsus^ c. 1588.] 20. Fortunatus. T. [Printed in German, 1620, as Comedy of Fortunatus and his Purse and Wishing Cap, in which appear first three dead souls as spirits, and afterwards the Virtues and Shame. Evidently from the first part of Fortunatus by Dekker, as acted, 3d February 1596, as an old play. It was probably written c. 1591. This play like (16.) ought to be made accessible to English readers.] 21. Joseph, the Jew of Venice. C. [From another early play of Dekker's, c. 1591. The German version is extant in MS. in the Imperial Library at Vienna, and ought to be edited and translated. The Jew, however, is therein called Barabbas, and there are three suitors, as in Shakespeare's play, but no caskets. Dekker's play was entered 9th Sep- tember 1653 on S. R.] EARLY ENGLISH PLAYS IN GERMANY. 311 22. The Dextrous Thief . T. C. 23. Duke of Venice. T. C. 24. Barrahas^ the Jew of Malta, T. [Marlowe's play, 1589.] 25. Old Proculiis. C. 26. Z^^r, King of England, T. [From the old Queen's play, c. 1589. Yet it is strange that it should be called a tragedy. It would hardly be Shakespeare's play, as no other of so late date occurs in the list.] 27. The Godfather. T. C. 28. The Prodigal Son. C. [Printed in German, 1620. Translated in Simpson's School of Shakespeare, Probably from an old play revived by Heywood for Derby's men c. 1599, but originally founded on Greene's Mourning Gar??tent, 1590, and written (for what company ?)c 1591. So I conjecture.] 29. The Graf of Angiers. C. 30. The Rich Man. T. [Acted on 17th September 1646 as The Rich Man and the Poor Lazarus. Perhaps from a very old play by Ralph Radcliffe before 1553 ; more likely from the Moral by the player (? R. Wilson) in Greene's Groatsworth of Wit, 1592, who wrote the Moral of Man's Wit . and the dialogue of Dives., and played in Delphrigus, The King of Fairies, The Twelve Labors of Her- cules, and The Highway to Heaven?^ 312 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. It appears from this list that while only one, if any, of these plays, Dorothea, which was probably taken with them by the Revels' company in 1625, can be assigned to a comparatively late date with certainty, the majority are early productions, ante- rior to 1592. Bearing in mind that there were a large number of plays published before 1626 which might have been used without fear of any opposi- tion from companies in England, it is clear that in Germany the preference was given to older plays, which must have been imported at an early date, either by Leicester's players in 1586, by Pem- broke's in 1599, or Worcester's [Admiral's] in 1590 and 1592. Leicester's returned to England in 1577 and Pembroke's c. 1601 ; but Worcester's, or rather a detachment from the Admiral's, were permanently established in Germany. E. Brown and R. Jones indeed came back to England ; but Thomas Sackville and John Broadstreet are trace- able in Germany, the latter 'to 1606 and the former to 1617. There is Httle doubt that the Hamlet and Romeo, in their German versions, are from early plays, anterior to 1592. This conclusion is confirmed by the list of plays published in Germany in 1620, "acted by the English in Germany at Royal, Electoral, and Princely Courts : "— EARLY ENGLISH PLAYS IN GERMANY. 313 1. Queen Esther and Haughty Haman. C. [16. in previous list.] 2. The Prodigal Son, " in which Despair and Hope are cleverly introduced." C. [28. in previous list] 3. Fortunatus and his Purse and Wishing Cap^ "in which appear first three dead souls as spirits, and afterwards the Virtues and Shame." C. [20. in previous list.] 4. A King's Son from England and a King's Daughter from Scotland. C. [Serule and Astrcea ; probably the same as Serule and Bypolita, acted 1631.] 5. Sidonia and TJuagine. C. d. Somebody and Nobody. C. [10. in previous list] "J. Julio and Hypolita. T. [f^VLQiy^ Philippo and Hypo- lita, acted as an 6?/^ play at the Rose, 9th July 1594 ; similar in plot to The Gentlemen of Verona^ 8. Titus Andronicus. T. [Not our extant play, but the Titus and Vespasian acted by Lord Strange's men, April 1592.] 9. The Beautiful Mary and the Old Cuckold. A merry jest 10. In which the clown makes merry pastime with a stone. I am not acquainted v^^ith Ayres's plays ; but it appears from Cohn (p. 64) that among them are 314 LIFE OF SHAKESPEARE. Mahomet the Turkish Emperor (from Peek's play, c. 1 591), The Greek Emperor at Constantinople and his daughter Pelimperia with the hanged Horatio (Kyd's Spanish Tragedy , 1588) ; Valentine and Orson (from an old English play S. R. 23d May 1595); Edward III., King of England, and Elisa Countess of Warwick (from Marlowe's play, 1590: Philip Waimer had already dramatised the same subject at Danzig in 1591) ; The Beautiful Phenicia (on the same story as Much Ado, and strongly confirming the identity of that play with Lov^s Labour's JVon, 1 590 : Cupid enters in person, and shoots Count Tymborus, the Benedick of the German version) ; The Two Brothers of Syracuse (from the Comedy of Errors f c. 1590); The Beautiful Sidea (containing some incidents showing that it came from some source in common with that of the Tempest, but cer- tainly not from that play direct) ; and King of Cyprus (founded on the same story as The Dumb Knight by Machin and Markham, c. 1607). Cohn does not give exact dates of authorship, but is of opinion that we should not assign to any a year later than 1600 ; and in 1605 Ayres died. Here again we meet with the same phenomenon — acquaintance with many EngHsh plays of date anterior to 1592; but not with any one that can be shown to be later. No doubt Ayres*s knowledge of English plays was EARLY ENGLISH PLAYS IN GERMANY. 315 obtained from the Worcester's (Admiral's) company, who went over in 15 90— 2. Yet further, in the tragedy of An Adulteress by Duke Henry JuHus of Brunswick, printed 1594, we find the plot of The Merry Wives almost identically reproduced (see Cohn, p. 45, &c.) I do not see, however, so much likeness between his Vincentius Ladislaus and Much Ado. As regards Shakespearian chronology, it results from this examination of English plays in Germany that there is no positive evidence of English plays of later date than 1592 having been acted there before 1625 ; that there is evidence that many (a score at least) of date not later than 1592 were acted between 1592 and 1626; that these plays were probably among those imported by Worcester's (Admiral's) players in 1592 ; and that in the list are contained The Comedy of Errors^ Romeo and Juliet^ The Merry IVt'ves, The Gentlemen of Verona^ and Love's Labours Won, i.e. every play by Shake- speare except Lovers Labour^ s Lost, that is in this treatise placed at a date not later than 1592 ; besides Kyd's Hamlet, Marlowe's Edward III., and other plays with which Shakespeare was indirectly connected. APPENDIX. TABLES. APPENDIX. In Table I. I give the dates of the Stationers' Registers entries of Shakespeare's plays as collected in 1623, the printers and publishers of the earliest extant edition of each, and the dates of all known subsequent editions anterior to the 1623 Folio. A. appended to a date means Anonymous, i.e. published without the author's name ; F. means that the edition was used by the Folio editors as copy to print from. The relative popularity of the plays will be in some measure seen by a glance at this table. The most popular were Richard III. (six editions in sixteen years) ; i Henry IV. (six editions) ; Edward HI. (five editions in twenty years) ; Richard II. (four editions in nineteen years) ; Henry V. (three edi- tions in nine years). All these were Histories. Next to the Histories rank the Tragedies Hamlet, Romeo and Juliet, and Pericles : the other great tragedies, Lear, Othello, and the Comedies being decidedly less to the popular taste than the Histories. The entries of change of copyright will be found in their places in Table V. Table II. gives similar information for every known extant play not of Shakespeare's authorship in which he 320 APPENDIX. may have been an actor or reviser. Edward III. appears in both these tables. The extreme popularity of Muce- dorus is very noticeable. Table III. gives the number of Court performances in each year for such companies as are known to have been playing in London. From this table it is evident that up to 1591 the Queen's men were the most important of all ; in other words, that Greene was the chief Court stage poet, and held the position formerly occupied by Lyly, who wrote for the Chapel children before the public theatrical companies had obtained the prominent place. His chief rival was Marlowe of the Admiral's company. But after 1 59 1 Lord Strange's company takes the lead and keeps it, which means that Shakespeare was the principal Court stage writer till 161 1. This throws new light on the relations of Greene, Shakespeare, and their respective companies. But this table comprises, in fact, a com- pendium of the whole stage history of the time ; and as the current versions of this history by Collier, Halliwell, and others are replete with blunders, it may be well to give a very short summary of the results of my investiga- tions — proofs, where lengthy, of some minor details being necessarily reserved for a future publication. Column i. concerns one company only : as Lord Leicester's it was acting in London in 1585 ; in 1586 it was acting on the Continent; in 1587-8 it was travelling about England ; after Leicester's death it began in 1589 to act in London, and was patronised by Lord Strange, who became Earl of Derby in 1593: after his death in 1594, Henry Carey, Lord Hunsdon, the Lord Chamberlain, became its APPENDIX. 321 patron, who died in 1596 ; they then passed to his heir, George Carey : in 1603 they were patented as the King's men, and retained that title till the closing of the theatres. Column ii. The Admiral's men were abroad from 1 5 9 1 to 1594; in 1603 they were assigned to Prince Henry, and after his death in 161 2 to the Palsgrave. The Earl of Hertford's men, who appear once in this column, were not a regular London company, but probably invited to play this once at Court while the Admiral's were abroad, in consequence of the Queen having been entertained by Hertford in the preceding year's progress. Column iii. Queen Elizabeth's company, formed 1583, took the lead till 1591 : they only reappear in conjunc- tion with Sussex in 1593-4, when both companies vanish from the London stage. About 1599 Derby's company appears in London : it became Worcester's in 1602, and was assigned to Queen Anne in 1603. Column iv. The Earl of Oxford's "boys" were in London in 1586; they travelled in the plague year, and are almost certainly the same company who reappear in London in 1589 as Pembroke's. By Marlowe's aid they prospered a year or two, but after his death became insignificant, and are only dimly traceable to 1600. In 1597 the Chapel children are stated to have occu- pied Blackfriars, but till 1600 no play is traceable to them. In 1603-4 they were reorganised as the Chil- dren of the Revels, and again in 1 610 as a new company under the same name: in 161 2 they were again reor- ganised as the second Lady Elizabeth's company, the first of that name, set up in 161 1, having broken up. 322 APPENDIX. Column V. The Paul's boys were inhibited c. 1590, re-established 1600, finally put down 1607. The Duke of York's men were estabhshed 16 lo, and at Prince Henry's death in 161 2 took the name of the Prince of Wales' men. The reader will observe that never more than five companies existed contemporaneously j and scarcely ever more than two of considerable importance. The state- ments of Collier and Halliwell are grossly exaggerated. In Table IV. every entry of a play that I can find in the Stationers' Registers is extracted with all necessary fulness. The only point requiring explanation is that the capital letters after the publishers' names indicate the names of the licensers : — T. = Tylney ; B. = Sir G. Buck ; S. = Segar, his deputy ; A. = Sir John Astley ; H. = Sir Henry Herbert; T. = Thomas Herbert, his deputy; Bl.= Blagrave, also his deputy. Where the Master of the Revels or his deputy was not the licenser, the insertion of the Wardens' names, &c., would have needlessly encumbered the tables. The spelling has been modernised, except in proper names, &c., where it is of advantage to retain the old forms. These tables afford for the first time complete means of estimating Shakespeare's influence, in I. on the reading public positively ; in II. as compared with his co-workers ; in III. at Court ; in IV. as compared with writers for other companies. Table V., of transfers of copyright, is, I fear, in spite of much labour, incomplete. Notifications of omission will be welcome and duly acknowledged with gratitude. TABLES. 324 APPENDIX. Table I.— QUARTO EDITIONS Date, S. R. 1593-4 1593-4 1595 1597 1597 1597-8 1598 1600 1600 1600 Feb. 6 r Mar. i2ii( Dec. I Aug. 29 Oct. 20 Feb. 25 July 22 Aug. 4 Aug. 14 Aug. 23 1600 Oct. 8 1600 1601-2 1602 1602 Oct. 28 Jan. 18 April 19 July 26 1602-3 Feb. 7 1607 Nov. 26 1608 May 20 1608-9 Jan. 28 1621 Oct. 6 For whom Entered, S.R. John Danter Thomas Myllington Cuthbert Burby Andrew Wise Andrew Wise Andrew Wise James Roberts ' ' Set over ' ' to Thomas Pavier Andrew Wise and William Aspley Thomas Fisher Thomas Haies John Busby (with assign- ment to Arthur Johnson) Thomas Pavier James Roberts James Roberts Na. Butter: Jo. Busby Edward Blount Ri. Bonion ; Hen. Whalley Thomas Walkley Name of Play. Titus Andronicus York and Lancaster, I. Richard Duke of York Edward III. Romeo and Juliet (i) Richard II. Richard III. . 1 Henry IV. . Merchant of Venice . Love's Labour's Lost Romeo and Juhet (2) As You Like It Henry V. . ■ Much Ado about Nothing 2 Henry IV. Midsummer Night's Dream Merchant of Venice . Merry Wives of Windsor I, 2 Henry VI. and Titus Andronicus . Revenge of Hamlet (i) Hamlet (2) Troylus and Cressida King Lear ( Pericles . ( Anthony and Cleopatra Troylus and Cressida Pericles . Othello . APPENDIX. OF SHAKESPEARE'S PLAYS. 325 Printer and Publisher of Earliest Edition Extant. Dates of Extant Editions. a b c By J. R. for Edward White By Thomas Creede for Thomas MiUington By P.S. for Thomas MiUington 1594A. I59SA. 1600A. 1600A. 1600A. ... 1611A. 1619A. 1 d ... for Cuthbert Burby 1596A. IS99A. 1609A. 1617A, 1625A. e By John Danter 1597A. f By Valentine Simmes for An- 1 597 A. 1598 1608 1615F, ... drew Wise g By Valentine Sims for An- 1597A. 1598 1602 1605 1612 1622 drew Wise h By P. S. for Andrew Wise 1598 1599 1604 1608 1615F. 1622 i i I By J. Roberts By W. W. for Cuthbert Burby By Thomas Creede for Cuth- bert Burby ' ' Stayed " with the two follow- ing plays. Not printed. 1598 1599A. ... 1609 A. F. ... ' in ByT. Creede for T. MiUington ... 1600A. 1602A. 1608A. and J. Busby By V. S. for Andrew Wise and n {::: 1600 F. ... ... ... William Aspley 1600 ( ... for Thomas Fisher 1600 ... 1 By Tames Roberts By J. R. for Thomas Hayes ... 1600 F. ... ... P 1600 F. ... %' H %^-% I VO "1 c5n 2i 2 - 'is ^ 3 biO a ^.§ ^ 8 0> ON OS O.VO OsOr2:3^oO'OQOOOQO( IT) to U-) lO H lOvO r_1w-w<*-.vO .vOvOvOvOvOvOv. .^; t(i S ^ H 3 o Ik O tn »- o •a c c o IJ 82 wg O cJ c o >l a o -a c. o- ir Ca -—J i § ,^ a •S a! w 13 ny r, - -t-i >^ *-" "t- w > O " c >s o -^ W ^ t: cx-^ ^ 5i} o o"a cj C (fl "5? OS 1 R. Jones T. Creede C. Burby W. Jones &0 IS o o C. Burby and W. E. White J. Barnes W. Ferbrand W. Cotton W. Aspley and T, E. Blunt N. Butter G. Vincent G, Elde A. Johnson II 1 m.. CO ^ V) OsO\0\ it ^< SI M H i6oi Aug. 14 1600 Nov. II 1602 Aug. II 1604 July2&5 1604 Nov. 2 1607 July 31 1607 Oct. 7 1607 Oct, 22 M APPENDIX. 327 ^ 00 H coco H CO^N 000 O O O O O W s (U I >! CO cj cj 10 M O C( c^ H 3 &r, rt a. "rI • ■> 0) f^ ft §°" N H C0« « H CO W i 1 Revels L. Eliz Revels L. Eliz V] w ^ « H N (M rt . ^ O N M >COtJ-o CJOO O O O « O « COj > to I 00 oooovoco ei »o\o ^oococo «o^T^oclco(M s lOvO tNOO 0\ 0\ H C< COrJ-lOVO fNOO 0\Q H a OOrJ-lOVO ^sOO 0\M H « CO -* lo^o t^oo ON O H pj co-*^o\o tNOo cjN 6 HI oo^iovo t^co g\ o H c< 000000000000 O0n0n0nO0\0\0\0\0\0 O O O O O O O O O w h h : CO -^vo 'vo vO VO 328 APPENDIX. >M o H ■^ •o ^ 1 HH rf 00 C/) «0 > ** < O ^ 00 ►-I O S a> N (U o a. vS 3- o a, --^ O W5 C Is X 2 'd o w- 5 S H c S IS« W HHHH g ii '^ ■i t ^ a K cJ O rt 3 1 1 ^ ^ c3.y H H o« g« s^^^ m^ P!i P5 Pi .'Hi '»- > >- *i >, tUO >» moo o c/O oo ON APPENDIX. 329 2l3W ^- «::§« i §1 ^'S^UU Tljg flO W -3 ^ rt .'->^ ^_^ >> ^i; ':^Ct^^'a5s-S>xc« ...2 ■ so « 2i.S^^^^ o,S ^>^U^ «.S «> OOP A A p^S S SSS S fl •— » (3 i 1 V 53 <0 (0 « it CA hd TJ 'O'a "d A 2 (rmond Wat< >hn Danter >hn Danter 1 icholas Lini Busbye )hn Danter homas Cree to ster Shorte homas Cree homas Cree 1 O rt c^ o (U « O "> o _ ~ -^ S 2 '0 v*- "is ^"5 ^ CQ o " I- a . :3 ^u _^ ^ ii -d ^ o c fi - a; ^^ n:: ^ S C> o ^ «" -^ o •^ o>^ *- d ^ ^ rS S ^ On 0\ 10 10 •^ 10 OS ON 10 VT) 332 APPENDIX. bo V c to '^^ ;«-§ SJ £ S S t-^s^£Z /tJ w ^ .cj ^ "^ .S2 o c ;=; 1> SI ^ - o i> - ^- > rH*^ .Ho 43 1: '73 C W S » 3 rt O US C — ^ ^ .t:: 5 "5 t« s o !=) P^ ^ bo 3 % JH ^ ss *> &s Mi . d o -1 l'2 s ^ O ^-2 ^ a o 2 ii . n- CO r^ 00 rOOO '-' N N M M M tOj to (U) ^^ bio &• *z *: *; ♦J :3 Z3 53 rt rt 3 o o o tj <: < < s:^ < 03 o ooo 1 334 APPENDIX. QJ o "a. : 1 1 s ^ • § CI t« ^^ >_ O (U i*- 1/3 ? ^ . aJ S (U o 'O c^ ij H H ho;2:h ~> -^ V '^ v*-'2= .J .52 tjo^o S o v^ U u J' >^ Oj tJD O J2 > ^ ^. ^S§ Tf i-i i-iOO s o o (u s s APPENDIX. 335 M I isl 1 ^4 t- I I <£ fv; si ; -ps:- ^ :§^ 1 fig :" is ?i.f .a -i O !-• -r 4J , s 1 5 s tall 6 S-H rt > Ph U3 1 o o 1 C/3 1 .2 1 ;2 a ^ s %U% C o a c?5 % s ^r ^ Id J3 §£IS S K „ t^ O iTi a o^ 0\ Ti-00 00 N W 00 VD •^ fO c< N 3 -g t 3 °J > 6 A o (1)13 -g i >% ^ ^ < CO < 4^^ f=M fe ^ :^ 3 N M -* 4 VO ^g ^ 5 v§ v§ 336 APPENDIX. o CO H o c I— J o -« :5 ^ 45 o be ;=! ID eug 5J o O S a; c« p. w O^ 3.5 5^ •t! b .^ "2 > J- O V •9 fl a3 J^ C ic^-i tiS g^ . l:^ W H H *- ^ Jf 'O J^ w cJ ■^ 45 i ">^ *»^ ? £ O o ^ ^ M g g «^2 ^ ^1 S^'5^ "•= 2m O 1» Si <'9.Ji ovi a (4 ^'sitv^^ ^2 " W Q i-i I c" o 12 o B < bX) W 2 ^;5 4^ ^ 6 g rt J;2 g ^^h;^; byj ^ W ^ o O) SS S I" 5 APPENDIX. 337 •^ I -s ^ 5;^ ti/)4; m pq pqwcQpq pq H CQ pqpqwpqpqpq w pq o a, o o W o -r. -c biO bit) fcJO c bfl '^ ;-! ^H ^H C j_ -H O O o o o (U (U 4h ^>> >» ^ di fii (i, «s rt cj » ^ >,bflfc/3bJ3 H '-i 53 3 3 338 APPENDIX. O) W rS ^;:.y t o (-1 o cs ^ &^ ^ 2 o -rtu S- g^ tii^ "* 2 o 2 \^ S'S rt O ^ C ^ >-i f^ .-- ^H s- O .> 2 *. 2 s rt S § -12 o c ^ 2 s si, -^ p W m ttpq pq pq pci pq oi PQ APPENDIX. 339 eS >» S (U |i 1 1 1 fili." i I lull =■ I ° ^.2|l Wc/3 C/2C/2 m :/! m : fp pQWpqpqpq pqpq I § i § « I B g^titi|g't5 J-S -S I I 00 OO O MM O O M M « 340 APPENDIX. -.a >->. C •itfl o o u o ^^ o »*^ << .~, o o ^ o 0) . rj 'C (u rt aJ a, VOVO VO <- I. VO vj 00 VO VO 3 APPENDIX. 341 •> • (A Oi V bjo >:. o*^ J^rf ^ p^Own^ °. 0) ci •a.-s S'Q^si r-§ sg-^ a r-^-s-is '^'^ "^ B '^'^^"' P=:^~ o a •ffi ,9 pi fe i« > ^ b^ «3 fl _ U o ^ it! P" *- C"o o J5 ^ ffi H 12 Q ^ o o 013 o S 6 >», •fa ■■SiS ;^ o (U r£3 > o o .J2 5^ ti -^ IZlW W ►— > t^H I VO *5 *J "C 'C ^ «S W N M N \0 "vO VO vO vO S o On VO ^'ILIhOniv;: APPENDIX. 343 c '^ .C/3 1 ;a8 C/3 <»i P J3 ^« •rs o '^ o ^ oj fo"^ 55 -o S § >>S Ui i-* i" CJ -i; i« ^^^ ^ _rf '-' c/2 pq ^ -^ -^gS-^.o J0 >^ ^ pj >-i Q. a p^j3 (u cj U ►H, s O c)?P^ -B^U Pu pq H H ffi H H H << H H E- EPhKEPhKEKhhK K KKEKKhhi-h XX X 4) V I 1 C to 1o o aS S § I § ,J:4 O i« o )-• — Si B <" fl S .J3 9^ _Q o >-''-; »-i i-i »-< o i-« N •-• N M »-i cJj iz; fiH fi* . 344 APPENDIX. C 'to a o o .t5 ^ > O '^ ^ r— I S^ >-l *J S •-< o •^ o_S t^ 0) eJ k or. a o o u W Si's. 2< ^ o o tj rt O 3 M plj |Ih S HH hC HH S X II4 W S HH HH HH M M S Ph 4J Jh 5 O cJ Cj Cj 5 K*- O S 2 1^ [o fe \1 ^ ►^ g 2 ^W ^ o J - ^^ i a a ^■§^ a 2-^-^ a lU >-• *H- X5i o.?; ».\* 4^ v« ^ 77* O O VO O O C APPENDIX. 345 ^-^""§sii - i 1^4? gil^l^. gill % ^S^S'SS'H^ X X SpqSSHin !l^ pi^'H^'S'S S ^|u||o| I I io^^ii I III I iSiSlI^ 2 ^ -i|i«u I III J t^ moo cooso t>. ^^t^ vo i-i N M tH cr> i-« VOVO \0 NO biS (3 c^ w o 1— > '^ 00 N f, ^ fXH < I*- 4o <* CO » (U ^ t;i t3 o i J3 , ^- e5 ^ H o . >^^ cs cj it "^ So ^ ^^ |t_i ^u ■»CA! a. < a. a o U 4) eS H H HHHh (^ 11 o 2 « « 5288 c;r o c ;r :r -S 'C "C 4^ >■ > di CI, cj o o g -s-s 15 3 3 ^ APPENDIX. 347 1 o •5 ^ '^^ ^^ ^ ,9 Z. « o r- ^ b bJoTn W2 53 c3 'd "S^w to '2 H S -t^ -o o t^ 00 00 o\ mm fo m 348 APPENDIX. p. « < .i3 ^ »2 O t .S >> s V S a 1 < 1 1 1— > "p. without money. 7 Knave in Grain, or Jack Cottington. A play. Bride, by Thomas Nabbes. A play. Humorous Courtier, by James Shirley. A play. ;rtus Wallenstein, late Duke of Friedland, by Henry ! < in w II ID w o a. 1 h r ^^ %^ ^^ A Pastoral. by James Shirley. A Tragedy. Entered ooke. iscovery, by J. G., gent. A tragi-comedy. >f Saint Albons, by Master James Shirle i 1 1 .n ^^ . c Id >» o 151 si S )rtunate Mi Rebellion, Arcadia, i's Cruelty, Master Cr Strange D Tragedy c a,> O a di' ^ u OiOX! *J 1 a -a ?i •g« 'o « fl M V o H .i-. '>-i I-. "u ■;-. >» >> I 350 APPENDIX. .5 "^ d oi w I iS 'o O NO .2^ .§ a h ii -d rt PQ oJ g, „ ^ c:^ c< _.wit^"-lliL^1ii55s«s^''^ ^ ^ vo 2 bx c ,/ w O SO o . C I— > .5 H ^ IS 00"^ •" 1^.52 5 kV^V* >^^ ^^ O - rt o ^ . 2 S^ o- 7a H ;^.<" *i in o^t.'«>^t:'d^s^ .■S'd:^--1(Ss^'-'d:2 ^:2j3c: Kw ^ S3W- -Sp^O cl O O cJ e4 gc i TO (/3 .^' ■ i_ 1-i § -d c ^ ;h >,S P^ TO fli c/3 S rt c3 W jw Q ^ c5 w 'd ^ -^ b/:T:5 _ _ ^ o i-< vo Tj- 00 a. Oi o c 00 OOOO CT» On VT) "^ vrj vr> lY-i ^-: ^ +: *r' ij bij bJo >» vo u-> lo to lo mvO VO vg Ac/30-l N vo vo vo vo vo APPENDIX. 351 KM vo Z2 O 4) ^ §^ ^ ^ <" S H, ^•^ O <« fe N • ej *^ 1^ ^ cj O Ji f3 0) 4; if o 10 ^ . O (/J t^ o C .CO S ^^^ >» 2 *-r: C « C 425 §0 :i - o -<^ _ , . ■*- o . •^2. .S^-2 ^s.^ -8 i^ rt -rr. '-' O ai H I— >C/3 wOP^H- ,Q?wO .3 'd "^ J- «sJ rt » s ^ s a B ^ a •73 cJ S S " w CJ c^ > o o 00 1^ r^ t^ On 0^ On 10 in to O « rhf^CO O O M N li^ 00000'-'«»-''-''-' vOVOvOvovovOvovO^OvO ThOO On N 0\ On ON O w-) 10 LOVO 35^ APPENDIX. 00 US m • 0) W Ti ''^ =1 ^ 2 O "* >^ C S •S"S5 ^ = . jt g S f^ K ^f^>. ■N a s Jit: 2: pq i:*7 (U ^- ^'C c3 ti4_r «3 CI. !>-) f^OO " ' ON o o o ~ lOVO vo vo APPENDIX. 45 ^s ill ►O Orjj ^ o ^ s ?:■ (3 M C) M M ^ -, CI 55- _ S O^ - to ^^ i >' O ^ HH • vo .23 Go a. . K i: «^ ^ Jn^ •^ rt rt u _ ^*^ Lu « o i; j3 I pi. (i, « •C rt '^ ^ -« ^ rt o O :3 Q- bfl"d p a. 00 N N o o &. VO fO -J > o O ^ w O VO VO u-> t-i rh ro O r^oo rt t^ r^ N N rf wNf^roOOO'-ii-'OONOv ON vOvOVOvOvOvOvD'OvOvo^ovo "^ COCOM ThNvo ONO ro vovovovOvovovovOvD 354 APPENDIX. o i to So 1^ "^ ^ 2 in 2 nH N N M vo VO vo o" vo (2 a, w I C/3 ! i bjoS 53 .^Pm —t . S^ «< tjo 8 o ci^sS > c S rtis S U fe O C/3 HH o ro OSVO C^ O Q VO VO vo M tv.t>^r>.rt>-H CON lOw N r'li-i 0000C7n-''-''"0>-ii-<>-">- VO vo VO vo VO 4) On Si to w 3 TfOO a a, a C/3 VO 1 a> "o U ^ c ^ IS Ohio CO *^ « CI, 00 w fOC/3 vo vo . s CO >^0^ rt ^ 3 ^ =s a lU 5^ 1^ c; ^ S M ^ O ffi HI hJ o o ,£3 s a ° 2 G 1=1 o o G G o o rt G ^^Si a. < G rt AS j^*^ > ; tn 4J VO r-H tS .S c Co (^ c ^ 51 q c r^ Q C/3 S -2 rt - g « " ^ fl 2 ^ •C .S « " 8 ^ K -s « •*-" .2; 0) TiJ ^ "I "'§ u- c ^ o g o „ *i *- S ■ "* a> (U ^-S c a. 2 w w >• O *— O "H o (-. w ^ « C jj 2 cJ w •S d S J= E *" P cj S .iS =g 5 ^ g J^ i- . c 2-^0 2 s.^ :5s ex. C 3 'o o tJ} S APPENDIX. 357 rt O =1 o cr* tn ^.§ en O D;^ ^ '^ ° sT «3 o S? u ^ gg o X m *" -^ rf «: 'd J3 >> -- o ^ O to "d ^ Si ^ t- d P to trt •n O C3 rS "> B .52 C/3 M o £3 O O u O fcJ3 en vd 7=! ;^ ri5 « H H 3 ;5 ■a I >^^ '^ U ^ I ^ (U ■^ to '^ P^ ^ K« ^ P= S H-J "5 "^ i5 2 c - ti .ti o 2 g en o ^ O -CJ ^ o (u E b/j Ji '^ >«^ o H S (U "^ >» e s o a '^ tS .'2 hs o w ^ 2^a '^ 'c .S ^ 5J .^ ►^ o "I' "^ pq c '2 >»"'« « wS 6 .2J -d .2 o ^ y^ iS - S.^ ^^ oT « Ph o V ^ <^ P 15 H CO !f H w-e 3S8 APPENDIX. k> i ^ 1 1^ bo 1 1 1 h "io o 1 i <3 S 1^ oi o:^' a." ■S CU cu^* ^' o U o u u'g Is 1 C H c5 § o^ Is c (U 1 a 1 *: 13 1^^ 1 1 < ^ J^-*_ _ * * * *_*_ * Ih l-> (1 u >-, M >-> » s o V 0) 0) % OJ OJ >> c c c c »-*^^ o o o o < ^ < 'J)^ Dioi fe' u^ Wi ? . . 1=1 c c c c c c <<< C 2 H ^3 1 s O •§ :S "« •- S -S 3 a§ ° S ^ (4 1 a .s f C 8 c t— 1 BO l| II It ■1| O (U Cu i -^ ^y^^ ^^•B^e- ' 0)0 1 c^^ <" 0) 0) 4) 0) 4) S^^-Q, (U E .5 fi rt g Pi * f HH %«« 3 ^ d > II 1 333 o o o S E S G c: a < Osi HP K ffiffi K <<< ^ «*-. -*j II III IJIi 4 ? o .2 o 1 P Hb b HHH INDEX. 361 INDEX OF PLAYS AND AUTHORS CONNECTED WITH SHAKESPEARE'S COMPANY BEFORE 1611. Author. Anonymous Dekker . Drayton , Fletcher . Jonson . Play. Alarum for London Cloth Breeches and Velvet Hose Cromwell, Earl of Essex Edward III. Fair Em Gowry .... Hester and Ahasuerus . Jealous Comedy . Knack to Know a Knave Locrine London Prodigal . Merry Devil of Edmonton Mucedorus . Oldcastle Richard, Duke of York Seven Deadly Sins Sir Thomas More . Spanish Maz Tambercam, 2d part, acted 28 April 1592. Taming of a Shrew Taner of Denmark, acted 23 May 1592. Titus and Vespasian Warning for Fair Women York and Lancaster Yorkshire Tragedy Satiromastix . Merry Devil of Edmonton Oldcastle, Sir John Henry VIII. Two Noble Kinsmen . Alchemist Every man out of his humour Pages. See Lodge. 326. 42, 145, 146, 298. See Shakespeare. See Wilson. 152, 301. 93, 116,309. See Shakespeare. 16, 109, 290. See Peele. 54, 148, 154, 299. See Drayton. See Lodge. See Drayton. See 3 Henry VI. See Tarleton. 27, 127, 292. S3. See Kyd. 16, 109, 313. See Lodge. See 2 Henry VI. 53, 54, 154, 158, 302. 36, 43, 45, 298. 31, 58, 131, 139, 157, 294. 41, 78, 140. See Shakespeare. 252. 65, 81, 163. 36, 37, 79, 137, 297. 2 A 362 INDEX. INDEX OF Vl.KYS—continmd. Author. Jonson . Kyd Lodge Marlowe Peele . . . Rowley . . Shakespeare Play. Every man in his humour Jeronymo (additions) Sejanus .... Volpone ... Hamlet .... Jeronymo (Spanish Tragedy) Taming of a Shrew Alarum for London Mucedorus Warning for Fair Women Edward III. . Guise (Massacre of Paris) Henry VI. . . . , Richard, Duke of York . Richard III Titus Andronicus . York and Lancaster Edward I Locrine Birth of Merlin All's well that ends well Anthony and Cleopatra . As you like it . . , Coriolanus . . . . Cymbeline . . . . Edward III Errors, Comedy of Hamlet Pages. 34, 39, 40, 79, 140, 297. 49, 80, 147, 151, 301. 50, 54, 56, 80, 154, 303- See Shakespeare. 16, 52, 151, 308. 19, 23, 28, 99, 116, 117, 129. 27, 126, 291. 56, 156, 303. 35, 136, 297. See Shakespeare. 16, 112. See Shakespeare. See 3 Henry VI. See Shakespeare. See Shakespeare. See 2 Henry VI. 14. 24, 120, 291. 289. 42, III, 142, 216. 58, 157, 158, 161, 244. 36, 38, 39, 138, 140, 208. 60, 160, 244. / 57, 156, 162, 246. W I9, 23, 118, 127, 282. 13, 26, 105, 125, 178. 19, 23, 42, 49, 50, 99, 117, 142, 146, 148,149,227,309. INDEX. INDEX OF VI. hYS— continued. 363 Author. Play. Pages. Shakespeare I Henry IV 30, 32, 130, 134, 32, 130, 199. 2 Henry IV. . Henry V 35, 38, 4C, 138, 140, 206. 16, 109, 255. I Henry VI 2 Henry VI 39,98,115,145,263. 3 Henry VI 19,23,39, 1 10, 126, 145, 271. Henry VIII 68, 170, 250. Jealous Comedy (Merry Wives) 16, 19, 39, 112. John 27, 127, 196. Julius Caesar .... 39, 42, 214. Lear 53,58,156,157,237, 311. 11,32,103,133,202. Love's Labour's Lost Love's Labour's Won . 13, 104. Macbeth .... 28, 43, 55, 56, 57, 128, 155, 238. Measure for Measure 52, 153, 234. Merchant of Venice 30, 41, 129, 134, 141, 197. Merry Wives of Windsor 39, 139, 145, 210. Midsummer Night's Dream . 18, 26, 41, 126, 181. Much Ado about Nothing 33,40,134,140,204. Othello 52, 153, 235- Pericles 58,61,158,161,245. Richard II 26, 32, 42, 126, 132, 143, 187. Richard III 23, 32, 118, 132, 176, 275. 13, 27, 32, 38, 106, Romeo and Juliet . 128, 129,191,308. Taming of the Shrew . 23, 46, 146, 224. Tempest .... 66, 163, 248. Timon of Athens . 57, 156, 242. Titus Andronicus . 23, 114, 116, 176, 280. 364 INDEX. INDEX OF Vl.KYS>— continued. Author. Shakespeare Tarletoft Toumeur Tylney . Webster . Wilkins . Wilson . Play. Troylus and Cressida . Twelfth Night Two Gentlemen of Verona . Winter's Tale . . . Seven Deadly Sins Revenger's Tragedy Locrine Malcontent (Induction) . Miseries of Enforced Marriage Pericles Fair Em .... Pages. 23,44.61, i^, 146, 160, 220. 44, III, 145,219. 14, 106, 126, 188, 313- 65, 163, 247. 23, 296. 58, 305- See Peele. 52, 151, 301. 49, 148, 302. See Shakespeare. 13, 104, 285. NOTE ON THE ETCHINGS. I have been asked to say a few words on the illustrations to this volume. The Portrait of Alleyn has been kindly permitted to be taken from the oil painting preserved at Dulwich College, and has not, it is believed, been previously engraved as a book illustration. It was thought that the reader would prefer a representation of this great actor, the first managing director under whom Shakespeare performed, to a reproduction of one of the many portraits of the poet himself, which have now become so hackneyed. For like reason, the Font in which Shakespeare was baptized has been obtained from a hitherto unreproduced original : an oil sketch made on the spot in 1853 by the world-known painter, Mr. Henry Wallis, and now in the artist's possession. It is with no little satisfaction that I find my work allowed to be associated with that of a painter so eminent, and with the name of one of the great poets for all ages, Mr. Robert Browning. Printed by Ballanty/te, Hanson dr^ Co., Edinburgh and London. 14 DAY USE ^^^ RETURN TO DESK FROM WHICH BORROWED LOAN DEPT. Renewedbooksa re subjea to immedia^jall. e^Ovl^'^- : 'n ^Pr'e. ^ *tremjj -rr-*^ — — ^^'^U bb4-i(Jrm ^l^4ar'. '£20- irU-Q — llJan'esBI T^TrT^^^^ I ^ ..o^'etU JS9S2. liej^' 9Apr'63AEi WA1 ^^'^y ^^ 11 71 -9 AM 35 LD 2lA-50m-8. 61 rm7958l0)476B c^nv^-s Nl General Library University of California yc 14142 U.C. BERKELEY LIBRARIES III CDDbE2S7ia 760 55- / THE UNIVERSITY OF CALIFORNIA LIBRARY